Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n bishop_n call_v presbyter_n 3,421 5 11.0026 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54576 A compendious history of the Catholick church from the year 600 untill the year 1600 shewing her deformation and reformation : together with the rise, reign, rage, and begin-fall of the Roman AntiChrist : with many other profitable instructions gathered out of divers writers of the several times, and other histories / by Alexander Petrie ... Petrie, Alexander, 1594?-1662.; Church of Scotland. General Assembly. 1657 (1657) Wing P1879; ESTC R4555 1,586,559 1,238

There are 44 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o bishop_n to_o have_v be_v more_o ancient_a and_o say_v that_o amphibal_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o scot_n who_o live_v in_o the_o isle_n of_o man_n where_o king_n cratili●th_v build_v a_o stately_a church_n to_o the_o honour_n why_o will_v he_o not_o say_v for_o the_o service_n or_o worship_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o call_v it_o sodorense_n fa●●m_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cathedral_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o isle_n till_o the_o scot_n be_v dispossess_v of_o that_o isle_n and_o from_o thence_o the_o isle_n jona_n or_o icolmkil_n have_v be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o bishop_n then_o page_n 7._o he_o tell_v of_o ninian_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o galloway_n or_o candida_n casa_n and_o of_o palladius_n send_v by_o eclestin_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o he_o ordain_v seruan_fw-mi bishop_n of_o orkney_n and_o terva●_n bishop_n of_o the_o northern_a pict_n page_n 11._o he_o tell_v of_o a_o bishop_n about_o aldham_n but_o say_v he_o the_o story_n do_v not_o express_v his_o name_n for_o answer_v the_o history_n show_v that_o such_o man_n be_v in_o scotland_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o prelate_n or_o bishop_n in_o that_o s●nse_n as_o of_o late_a the_o name_n be_v use_v be_v very_o certain_a for_o first_o all_z who_o have_v write_v the_o history_n of_o scotland_n do_v testify_v that_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v without_o bishop_n and_o by_o teacher_n who_o be_v call_v culdee_n that_o be_v the_o worshipper_n of_o god_n or_o who_o teach_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o these_o be_v call_v sometime_o monk_n for_o their_o strictness_n of_o life_n and_o priest_n or_o presbyter_n and_o sometime_o they_o be_v call_v bishop_n either_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o other_o nation_n but_o by_o that_o term_n declare_v they_o to_o be_v lawful_a teacher_n or_o pastor_n both_o li._n 6._o c._n 5._o call_v they_o by_o these_o three_o name_n culdee_n monk_n and_o priest_n and_o laurentius_n the_o second_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_z call_v they_o fratres_n episcopos_fw-la &_o abbates_n and_o bishop_n jewel_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o apolo_n page_n 122._o say_v these_o three_o name_n bishop_n priest_n and_o presbyter_n be_v all_o one_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o at_o icolmkil_n be_v a_o college_n of_o student_n and_o there_o be_v one_o who_o be_v sometime_o call_v abbas_n and_o sometime_o doctor_n and_o sometime_o episcopus_fw-la as_o in_o that_o epistle_n write_v by_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n after_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n severin_n which_o be_v direct_v unto_o the_o bishop_n presbyter_n doctor_n or_o abbot_n these_o title_n be_v knit_v with_o the_o particle_n sive_fw-la likewise_o about_o the_o year_n 600._o columba_n be_v the_o churchman_n which_o be_v most_o respect_v in_o scotland_n and_o he_o be_v the_o doctor_n of_o icolmkil_n for_o as_o the_o king_n aidan_n do_v use_v his_o counsel_n so_o when_o he_o fight_v against_o the_o pict_n columba_n do_v call_v his_o colleague_n together_o and_o exhort_v they_o to_o turn_v their_o supplication_n into_o thanksgiving_n because_o the_o king_n have_v get_v the_o victory_n albeit_o the_o place_n of_o the_o battle_n be_v distant_a from_o jona_n where_o columba_n live_v and_o be_v at_o that_o time_n 200._o mile_n at_o least_o say_v bishop_n spotswood_n and_o the_o same_o bishop_n call_v convallan_n governor_n of_o that_o monastery_n after_o columba_n and_o buchanan_n li._n 6._o in_o the_o life_n of_o king_n kenneth_n iii_o say_v the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o the_o scot_n be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o monastery_n and_o these_o monastery_n be_v not_o for_o monk_n in_o that_o sense_n as_o they_o speak_v afterward_o for_o in_o li._n 7._o buchanan_n speak_v of_o king_n malcolm_n and_o the_o college_n at_o scone_n say_v malcolm_z turn_v the_o college_n of_o priest_n that_o be_v there_o into_o a_o monastery_n of_o monk_n second_o that_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n be_v not_o subordinate_a to_o rome_n and_o that_o they_o love_v not_o the_o discipline_n nor_o rite_n of_o rome_n be_v most_o certain_a by_o that_o contestation_n which_o be_v in_o century_n vii_o three_o that_o testimony_n of_o the_o synod_n at_o celicyth_n in_o england_n about_o the_o year_n 816._o be_v without_o all_o contradiction_n that_o at_o that_o time_n be_v no_o prelate_n in_o scotland_n see_v they_o testify_v that_o the_o scot_n give_v no_o honour_n to_o metropolitan_o nor_o other_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o they_o forbid_v the_o scot_n to_o have_v any_o function_n in_o england_n but_o in_o the_o contrary_a bishop_n spotswood_n tell_v of_o wiro_n and_o plechelm_fw-ge which_o be_v consecrate_v at_o rome_n bishop_n of_o the_o scot_n in_o the_o year_n 632._o as_o it_o be_v write_v say_v he_o in_o baron_n annal._n ad_fw-la ann_n 632._o and_o he_o add_v but_o by_o the_o cardinal_n leave_n our_o church_n have_v no_o such_o custom_n before_o that_o time_n nor_o will_v it_o be_v show_v that_o before_o these_o two_o any_o do_v go_v to_o rome_n either_o to_o be_v consecrate_v or_o confirm_v and_o then_o he_o add_v we_o find_v he_o wiro_fw-la short_o thereafter_o turn_v confessor_n to_o king_n pipin_n but_o if_o he_o be_v confessor_n to_o king_n pipin_n he_o be_v not_o bishop_n of_o the_o scot_n nor_o be_v pipin_n king_n of_o france_n till_o the_o year_n 750._o and_o so_o wiro_n must_v have_v be_v above_o 160._o year_n old_a ere_o he_o be_v confessor_n i_o have_v look_v on_o that_o place_n of_o baronius_n and_o he_o show_v his_o author_n to_o be_v surius_n ad_fw-la maij_fw-la diem_fw-la 8._o and_o all_o both_o papist_n and_o other_o hold_v surius_n to_o be_v a_o most_o fabulous_a writer_n as_o in_o that_o particular_a he_o write_v fabulous_o for_o he_o say_v wiro_n be_v confessor_n unto_o duke_n pipin_n and_o that_o pipin_n be_v wont_a to_o come_v unto_o he_o with_o bare_a foot_n when_o he_o make_v his_o confession_n this_o i_o say_v be_v fabulous_a see_v it_o be_v mark_v as_o a_o unmeasureable_a show_n of_o humility_n that_o justinian_n ii_o emperor_n make_v such_o obedience_n unto_o pope_n constantine_n in_o fall_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n and_o do_v not_o cast_v off_o his_o shoe_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v show_v that_o any_o writer_n of_o that_o century_n have_v the_o word_n confessor_n in_o that_o sense_n or_o that_o such_o a_o office_n be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n some_o such_o thing_n have_v be_v in_o use_n upon_o a_o particular_a occasion_n but_o upon_o a_o vile_a scandal_n it_o be_v forbid_v socrat._v hist_o l._n 5._o c._n 19_o and_o then_o baronius_n ad_fw-la ann_n 697._o call_v wiro_n episcopum_fw-la deirorum_fw-la when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o synod_n at_o utrecht_n now_o it_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o life_n of_o pope_n gregory_n i._o prefix_v before_o his_o work_n that_o a_o part_n of_o england_n be_v at_o that_o time_n call_v deira_n therefore_o wiro_n be_v not_o a_o bishop_n of_o scotland_n and_o therein_o baronius_n plechelm_fw-ge be_v call_v the_o candida_n massa_n or_o casa_n but_o bishop_n spotswood_n page_n 4._o say_v no_o bishop_n in_o scotland_n have_v any_o diocy_n before_o king_n malcolm_n iii_o and_o so_o that_o phrase_n de_fw-la candida_fw-la casa_fw-la show_v that_o plechelm_fw-ge be_v bear_v at_o that_o place_n and_o not_o that_o he_o be_v bishop_n there_o likewise_o bishop_n spotswood_n page_n 20._o speak_v of_o two_o bishop_n sedulus_fw-la and_o pergustus_fw-la who_o have_v assist_v in_o a_o synod_n at_o rome_n call_v by_o gregory_n ii_o in_o the_o year_n 721._o after_o their_o return_n make_v great_a disturbance_n in_o the_o church_n for_o erect_v of_o image_n it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o subscription_n of_o that_o synod_n such_o name_n be_v there_o and_o the_o one_o sedulus_fw-la be_v call_v episcopus_fw-la scotorum_fw-la and_o the_o other_o be_v call_v episcopus_fw-la pictorum_fw-la and_o so_o every_o presbyter_n who_o go_v out_o of_o scotland_n be_v call_v a_o scotch_a bishop_n but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o prelate_n of_o scotland_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o that_o testimony_n of_o the_o synod_n at_o celicyth_n in_o century_n ix_o which_o be_v near_o a_o 100_o year_n after_o gregory_n ii_o and_o then_o see_v what_o he_o do_v he_o press_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o the_o culdee_n deny_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_a say_v io._n bale_n cent._n fourteen_o and_o therefore_o many_o of_o they_o be_v depose_v such_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o their_o gade_v to_o rome_n and_o bishop_n spotswood_n page_n 26._o say_v express_o that_o kellach_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o this_o kingdom_n who_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o seek_v confirmation_n and_o that_o be_v about_o the_o year_n 904._o this_o instance_n condemn_v what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o of_o all_o those_o other_o who_o he_o call_v scotch_a bishop_n neither_o
canon_n that_o each_o presbyter_n dwell_v in_o a_o parish_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o bishop_n in_o who_o parish_n he_o dwell_v and_o always_o in_o lent_n that_o he_o show_v and_o give_v account_n of_o their_o ministry_n whether_o of_o baptism_n or_o catholic_n faith_n and_o prayer_n and_o order_n of_o mass_n then_o he_o forbid_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o dead_a and_o other_o profane_a rite_n of_o heathen_n he_o appoint_v punishment_n against_o the_o fornication_n and_o adultery_n of_o monk_n in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o monk_n and_o nun_n shall_v live_v within_o their_o abbey_n and_o almshouse_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o father_n benedict_n council_n tom_fw-mi 2._o edit_n crab._n behold_v how_o little_a mention_n be_v here_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 2._o in_o the_o year_n 747._o at_o clonesho_n in_o england_n be_v a_o frequent_a synod_n where_o clonesho_n at_o clonesho_n it_o be_v decree_v 1._o that_o bishop_n shall_v be_v more_o diligent_a in_o take_v heed_n to_o their_o charge_n and_o admonish_a people_n of_o their_o fault_n 2._o they_o shall_v maintain_v the_o devotion_n of_o true_a peace_n and_o love_n and_o serve_v god_n in_o the_o same_o faith_n hope_n and_o love_n pray_v for_o one_o another_o mutual_o 3._o that_o once_o in_o the_o year_n each_o bishop_n shall_v visit_v all_o the_o parish_n of_o his_o diocy_n and_o restrain_v the_o heathenish_a observation_n which_o as_o yet_o be_v among_o the_o people_n 4._o that_o none_o shall_v be_v admit_v into_o order_n till_o his_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o literature_n be_v examine_v 7._o that_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n shall_v diligent_o take_v heed_n that_o all_o under_o they_o be_v diligent_a in_o read_v for_o instruction_n of_o soul_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v lament_v say_v they_o that_o so_o few_o be_v find_v to_o be_v ravish_v with_o the_o love_n of_o holy_a knowiedge_n but_o be_v rather_o miscarried_n with_o vanity_n and_o love_n of_o idle_a glory_n and_o trace_v not_o the_o study_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 10._o that_o presbyter_n shall_v learn_v to_o know_v all_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o office_n especial_o they_o shall_v learn_v to_o interpret_v in_o their_o own_o language_n the_o creed_n the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o word_n that_o be_v say_v in_o the_o mass_n and_o in_o baptism_n and_o they_o shall_v study_v to_o know_v what_o the_o word_n signify_v spiritual_o ●8_o that_o the_o fast_a of_o the_o four_o seven_o and_o the_o ten_o month_n shall_v be_v observe_v king_n aelfwald_n and_o offa_n be_v present_a and_o they_o two_o with_o many_o duke_n and_o count_n confirm_v the_o decree_n with_o their_o subscription_n spelman_n ad_fw-la an._n 747._o 3._o constantine_n copronymus_n assemble_v a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n of_o constantinople_n at_o constantinople_n 338._o bishop_n out_o of_o asia_n and_o europe_n an._n 755._o this_o they_o call_v the_o seven_o general_n council_n here_o be_v theodore_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n basil_n bishop_n of_o pisidia_n pastiles_n bishop_n of_o pergamenum_fw-la john_n of_o nicomedia_n cosmas_n of_o epiphania_fw-la in_o apamea_n etc._n etc._n the_o controversy_n of_o image_n be_v discuss_v germanus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n gregory_n bishop_n of_o cyprus_n and_o john_n damascene_fw-la patron_n of_o image_n be_v accurse_v and_o constantine_n bishop_n of_o salaeum_n be_v make_v patriarch_n image_n of_o christ_n of_o mary_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v condemn_v as_o have_v no_o warrant_n from_o christ_n nor_o the_o apostle_n nor_o the_o father_n and_o if_o any_o will_v say_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n only_o be_v condemn_v because_o they_o can_v represent_v his_o two_o nature_n but_o the_o apostle_n have_v two_o nature_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v be_v tolerate_v the_o synod_n answer_v it_o be_v the_o subtlety_n of_o devilish_a man_n follow_v the_o error_n of_o the_o gentile_n but_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o will_v be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n but_o you_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o bless_a be_v they_o who_o have_v not_o see_v and_o believe_v etc._n etc._n then_o they_o allege_v many_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n against_o image_n they_o conclude_v let_v none_o of_o whatsoever_o estate_n henceforth_o follow_v so_o wicked_a and_o impure_a institution_n who_o dare_v from_o henceforth_o make_v any_o image_n or_o worship_n or_o set_v up_o any_o image_n in_o a_o church_n or_o private_a house_n or_o have_v it_o privy_o if_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n or_o deacon_n let_v he_o be_v depose_v if_o he_o be_v a_o laic_a let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n censure_n because_o he_o fight_v against_o the_o scripture_n nor_o observe_v the_o tradition_n etc._n etc._n last_o follow_v the_o canon_n accurse_v particular_o all_o they_o who_o have_v image_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o as_o he_o be_v man_n or_o as_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n in_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n or_o as_o if_o he_o be_v two_o person_n to_o paint_v on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o on_o the_o other_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n and_o they_o accurse_v all_o who_o have_v a_o image_n of_o any_o saint_n 4._o in_o the_o year_n 787._o by_o persuasion_n of_o tharasius_n patriarch_n irene_n call_v a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n here_o be_v pe._n vicedon_n a_o priest_n and_o pe._n hegumen_n a_o monk_n legate_n of_o pope_n adrian_n john_n patriarch_n of_o antiochia_n thomas_n of_o alexandria_n etc._n etc._n augustus_n make_v disputation_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n it_o be_v scan_v on_o both_o side_n tharasius_n and_o other_o bishop_n and_o monk_n be_v for_o they_o against_o they_o be_v basilius_n bishop_n of_o ancyra_n theodore_n bishop_n of_o myri_n theodosius_n bishop_n of_o amorio_n with_o many_o more_o bishop_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o teacher_n and_o layman_n the_o patriarch_n can_v not_o prevail_v by_o number_n and_o go_v about_o to_o exclude_v the_o better_a part_n from_o the_o synod_n or_o disputation_n whereupon_o a_o tumult_n be_v like_a to_o arise_v for_o the_o people_n can_v not_o be_v content_a that_o so_o great_a a_o part_n shall_v be_v debar_v when_o the_o patriarch_n see_v that_o he_o can_v not_o prevail_v the_o synod_n be_v dissolve_v the_o image-worshipper_n report_v this_o story_n as_o if_o their_o adversary_n have_v deal_v only_o by_o faction_n and_o not_o by_o reason_n but_o thus_o write_v pa._n diacon_n lib._n 23._o rer_n roman_n irene_n retain_v the_o legate_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o their_o advice_n banish_v a_o great_a number_n of_o they_o who_o they_o call_v iconomachi_n or_o fighter_n against_o image_n then_o she_o assemble_v another_o synod_n at_o nice_a in_o septemb_n an._n 788._o where_o the_o matter_n be_v quick_o dispatch_v as_o adrian_n and_o tharasius_n will_v when_o there_o be_v no_o great_a opposition_n to_o wit_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o act._n 3._o they_o decree_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v have_v embrace_v salute_v kiss_v and_o adore_v but_o that_o which_o be_v call_v latria_n they_o reserve_v unto_o the_o trinity_n only_o their_o chief_a pretence_n be_v because_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v to_o embrace_v and_o to_o love_v and_o the_o preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d add_v unto_o the_o signification_n as_o in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o what_o a_o man_n love_v or_o embrace_v that_o do_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o david_n do_v jonathan_n and_o christ_n say_v the_o pharisee_n love_v the_o first_o place_n at_o banquet_n and_o salutation_n in_o the_o market-place_n also_o the_o forenamed_a basil_n theodore_n and_o theodosius_n with_o the_o bishop_n hippatius_n of_o niece_n leo_n of_o rhodos_n gregory_n of_o pisidia_n gregory_n of_o pessinus_n leo_n of_o iconium_n nicolaus_n of_o hierapolis_n and_o leo_n of_o carpathe_n be_v persuade_v to_o profess_v repentance_n and_o confess_v a_o error_n in_o the_o former_a synod_n so_o image_n be_v set_v up_o and_o worship_v both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n say_v pa._n diacon_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la and_o zonar_n lib._n 3._o not_o long_o after_o constantine_n do_v annul_v the_o act_n of_o this_o convent_n platin._n which_o they_o call_v the_o seven_o general_n council_n baronius_n in_o annal_n ad_fw-la an._n 794._o show_v that_o many_o learned_a man_n and_o of_o great_a esteem_n in_o those_o day_n as_o ionas_n aurelianen_n walfrid_n hincmarus_n and_o other_o write_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o direct_o do_v contradict_v that_o council_n although_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n yea_o and_o 5._o in_o the_o year_n 792._o charles_n the_o great_a summon_v a_o council_n at_o frankford_n frankford_n at_o frankford_n which_o he_o do_v moderate_a
and_o you_o all_o shall_v further_o and_o help_v we_o ca._n 4._o he_o admonish_v bishop_n especial_o to_o teach_v their_o people_n both_o by_o life_n and_o doctrine_n both_o by_o themselves_o and_o they_o who_o be_v under_o they_o as_o they_o will_v answer_v in_o their_o account_n at_o the_o great_a day_n can._n 17._o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n or_o the_o high_a priest_n or_o any_o such_o title_n but_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_n can._n 4●_n none_o can_v lay_v another_o foundation_n save_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n whosoever_o therefore_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o neighbour_n keep_v the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n he_o have_v lay_v the_o same_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o man_n to_o be_v his_o foundation_n it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v therefore_o that_o where_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n the_o edifice_n of_o good_a work_n will_v follow_v in_o a_o word_n if_o his_o meddle_v with_o italy_n and_o his_o advance_v conversation_n his_o conversation_n the_o pope_n for_o confirm_v that_o which_o he_o have_v take_v can_v be_v excuse_v he_o be_v unto_o all_o prince_n a_o pattern_n of_o magnificence_n zeal_n in_o religion_n learning_n eloquence_n temperance_n prudence_n moderation_n etc._n etc._n alcwin_n contra_fw-la elipant_n lib._n 1._o say_v charles_n be_v a_o catholic_n in_o faith_n a_o king_n in_o power_n a_o highpriest_n in_o preach_v a_o judge_n in_o equity_n a_o philosopher_n in_o liberal_a study_n famous_a in_o manner_n and_o excellent_a in_o all_o honesty_n he_o be_v never_o serve_v at_o table_n with_o more_o than_o four_o dish_n at_o once_o his_o exercise_n be_v hunt_v and_o read_v of_o history_n pet._n mexia_n in_o the_o year_n 813._o crunus_fw-la duke_n of_o bulgaria_n pursue_v his_o victory_n and_o fight_v once_o with_o michael_n rangabis_n a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n and_o at_o the_o second_o alarm_n he_o do_v renounce_v his_o crown_n and_o leo_n armenius_n general_n of_o the_o army_n be_v declare_v emperor_n he_o slay_v crunus_fw-la in_o battle_n and_o return_v home_o with_o triumph_n thereafter_o he_o have_v peace_n he_o throw_v down_o image_n and_o banish_v the_o patriarch_n nicephorus_n a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n and_o many_o more_o zonar_n 3._o lewes_n the_o godly_a confirm_v the_o peace_n with_o leo_n armenius_n and_o trouble_n lewes_n his_o trouble_n have_v war_n in_o datia_n whence_o he_o be_v necessitate_v to_o return_v to_o redress_v some_o accident_n at_o home_n and_o he_o easy_o calm_v they_o by_o mean_n of_o his_o nephew_n bernard_n in_o the_o year_n 818._o the_o same_o bernard_n rebel_v against_o his_o uncle_n and_o claim_v the_o crown_n of_o france_n because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o elder_a brother_n but_o he_o be_v soon_o take_v captive_a his_o eye_n be_v pick_v out_o he_o be_v send_v prisoner_n into_o france_n and_o his_o kingdom_n be_v give_v to_o lotharius_n the_o emperor_n son_n at_o that_o time_n lewes_n confirm_v the_o donation_n of_o king_n pipin_n and_o of_o charles_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n without_o make_v mention_n of_o any_o former_a right_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o donation_n in_o volaterran_n and_o gratian._n yet_o he_o give_v not_o over_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n for_o platina_n in_o serg._n 2._o show_v that_o rome_n be_v allot_v unto_o lotharius_n when_o the_o empire_n be_v divide_v again_o and_o thegan_n chorepi_fw-la trevir_fw-fr write_v of_o the_o same_o lewes_n say_v it_o be_v appoint_v that_o according_a to_o former_a custom_n some_o shall_v be_v send_v from_o the_o emperor_n to_o rome_n who_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o judge_n shall_v do_v justice_n to_o all_o the_o people_n and_o according_o legate_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o judge_v pope_n paschalis_n who_o be_v challenge_v of_o murder_n io._n lampad_a in_o mellif_n lewes_n cause_v the_o bible_n to_o be_v translate_v into_o the_o saxon_a language_n though_o he_o be_v religious_a and_o studious_a of_o peace_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o free_a from_o conspiracy_n he_o have_v advance_v many_o person_n unto_o high_a honour_n and_o as_o crantz_n in_o saxon._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 25._o for_o their_o wickedness_n which_o he_o have_v certain_o try_v he_o cast_v they_o down_o again_o they_o therefore_o do_v devise_v many_o thing_n against_o he_o and_o draw_v his_o own_o son_n lotharius_n pipin_n and_o lewes_n on_o their_o side_n under_o pretext_n that_o the_o emperor_n do_v affect_v his_o young_a son_n by_o his_o present_a wife_n more_o than_o they_o they_o do_v so_o prevail_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v depose_v and_o lotharius_n be_v declare_v emperor_n who_o shut_v his_o father_n into_o a_o monastery_n and_o his_o young_a son_n charles_n many_o who_o be_v loyal_a will_v have_v take_v arm_n for_o his_o relief_n but_o he_o do_v forbid_v they_o hugobert_n bishop_n of_o lion_n and_o bernard_n bishop_n of_o vienna_n and_o many_o other_o bishop_n take_v part_n with_o the_o son_n because_o he_o will_v have_v restrain_v their_o pomp_n and_o pride_n but_o they_o make_v pretence_n that_o he_o have_v marry_v judith_n within_o degree_n forbid_v by_o the_o pope_n also_o pope_n gregory_n the_o iv_o hate_v he_o because_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n of_o image_n nevertheless_o he_o come_v into_o france_n under_o pretence_n to_o appease_v the_o trouble_n but_o as_o morn_n in_o myster_n ex_fw-la chronic._n dtony_n and_o other_o testify_v to_o kindle_v the_o coal_n he_o seek_v that_o both_o party_n will_v submit_v unto_o his_o arbitrement_n they_o who_o be_v on_o the_o emperor_n side_n be_v suspicious_a of_o deceit_n and_o will_v not_o submit_v but_o say_v to_o the_o pope_n if_o thou_o come_v to_o excommunicate_v we_o thou_o shall_v return_v excommunicate_v vsser_n de_fw-fr eccles_n stat_fw-la cap._n 1._o crantz_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la say_v when_o the_o son_n have_v examine_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o stir_n they_o find_v the_o innocency_n restoration_n his_o restoration_n of_o their_o father_n and_o restore_v he_o unto_o his_o empire_n and_o he_o be_v the_o meek_a of_o all_o mortal_n do_v ready_o forgive_v they_o and_o make_v lotharius_n partner_n of_o the_o empire_n with_o he_o but_o he_o deal_v more_o severe_o with_o the_o bishop_n they_o flee_v into_o italy_n nor_o can_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n help_v they_o only_o who_o do_v most_o humble_o confess_v their_o offence_n be_v pardon_v about_o that_o time_n a_o huge_a multitude_n of_o saracen_n enter_v into_o italy_n take_v rome_n and_o make_v saint_n peter_n church_n a_o stable_n for_o their_o horse_n and_o waste_v all_o thuscia_n burn_v house_n and_o church_n when_o they_o hear_v of_o the_o lombard_n come_v against_o they_o they_o make_v haste_n away_o with_o much_o spoil_n with_o infinite_a number_n of_o captive_n as_o also_o they_o spoil_v sicily_n michael_n the_o stutterer_n conspire_v against_o leo_n armenius_n in_o his_o 7_o year_n and_o kill_v he_o he_o slay_v some_o bishop_n and_o banish_v other_o who_o worship_v image_n his_o son_n theophylus_fw-la be_v answerable_a to_o his_o name_n he_o punish_v not_o only_o the_o worshipper_n but_o the_o maker_n of_o image_n in_o the_o year_n 824._o he_o send_v unto_o lewes_n desire_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o french_a church_n concern_v image_n and_o entreat_v that_o he_o will_v interpone_v his_o authority_n with_o the_o pope_n in_o that_o matter_n the_o emperor_n call_v a_o synod_n at_o paris_n of_o which_o be_v mention_n in_o the_o end_n of_o century_n 8._o and_o he_o send_v jeremia_n bishop_n of_o senone_n and_o ionas_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n unto_o pope_n eugenius_n who_o do_v ask_v by_o what_o place_n of_o scripture_n he_o can_v prove_v it_o lawful_a to_o worship_v image_n he_o answer_v they_o be_v arrogant_a who_o dare_v ask_v such_o question_n ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n ex_fw-la synod_n paris_n sub_fw-la ludo._n &_o lothar_n pe._n mexia_n write_v that_o these_o three_o most_o famous_a head_n of_o europe_n die_v within_o the_o space_n of_o four_o day_n theophylus_fw-la lewes_n and_o pope_n gregoryth_n iu._n an._n 840._o lewes_n before_o his_o death_n divide_v his_o kingdom_n and_o seek_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n 4._o lotharius_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o lewes_n succeed_v unto_o his_o father_n weaken_a the_o empire_n be_v divide_v and_o weaken_a with_o common_a consent_n except_o of_o his_o brethren_n charles_n and_o lewes_n for_o they_o take_v it_o ill_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v both_o france_n and_o italy_n and_o they_o be_v enclose_v in_o bojaria_n and_o aquitania_n so_o they_o force_v their_o brother_n unto_o a_o new_a division_n lewes_n become_v king_n of_o germany_n and_o have_v hungary_n bohemia_n saxony_n moravia_n frisia_n bojaria_n etc._n etc._n charles_n be_v king_n of_o france_n except_z
be_v this_o the_o custom_n of_o scotland_n only_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n by_o common_a consent_n of_o culdee_n or_o presbyter_n which_o in_o scripture_n be_v call_v bishop_n see_v §_o 11._o but_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n it_o be_v the_o custom_n every_o where_n for_o first_o they_o have_v a_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n which_o origenes_n contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la li._n 3._o call_v a_o church_n senate_n for_o when_o he_o compare_v the_o christian_a church_n at_o corinth_n athens_n and_o alexandria_n with_o the_o multitude_n of_o other_o people_n there_o he_o add_v also_o if_o you_o compare_v the_o church_n senate_n unto_o the_o senate_n of_o those_o city_n you_o shall_v find_v some_o senator_n of_o the_o church_n worthy_a to_o govern_v any_o place_n any_o commonwealth_n establish_v by_o god_n but_o these_o senator_n who_o now_o every_o where_o do_v govern_v have_v nothing_o excellent_a in_o their_o manner_n beyond_o the_o common_a multitude_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n if_o the_o church-magistrate_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o political_a magistrate_n etc._n etc._n and_o after_o eight_o page_n he_o say_v christian_n do_v so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v first_o examine_v the_o mind_n of_o they_o which_o desire_v to_o be_v their_o hearer_n ere_o they_o receive_v they_o into_o their_o number_n they_o try_v they_o first_o private_o and_o when_o they_o appear_v to_o have_v make_v such_o progress_n that_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o live_v honest_o than_o they_o bring_v they_o in_o by_o distinct_a degree_n and_o some_o be_v appoint_v to_o watch_v over_o their_o life_n and_o manner_n that_o if_o any_o of_o they_o do_v thing_n unlawful_a they_o debar_v they_o from_o the_o society_n and_o other_o they_o embrace_v hearty_o if_o they_o by_o daily_a progress_n become_v better_o and_o how_o severe_a be_v our_o discipline_n against_o they_o which_o be_v faulty_a especial_o who_o be_v defile_v with_o uncleanness_n our_o church_n cast_v they_o out_o of_o our_o commonwealth_n and_o again_o when_o they_o repent_v we_o receive_v they_o no_o other_o way_n then_o as_o if_o they_o be_v raise_v from_o death_n but_o after_o a_o long_a trial_n then_o when_o they_o be_v at_o first_o receive_v to_o learn_v the_o religion_n but_o upon_o this_o condition_n that_o because_o they_o have_v fall_v they_o shall_v thereafter_o be_v uncapable_a of_o all_o dignity_n and_o church-magistracy_n so_o far_o origen_n hence_o we_o see_v the_o primitive_a church_n have_v their_o judicatories_n and_o their_o ruler_n and_o how_o they_o do_v censure_v the_o scandalous_a person_n second_o who_o be_v these_o ruler_n ambrose_n teach_v on_o 1_o tim._n 5._o saying_n among_o all_o nation_n old_a age_n be_v honourable_a whence_o the_o synagogue_n and_o then_o the_o church_n have_v their_o elder_n without_o who_o counsel_n nothing_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n which_o form_n by_o what_o negligence_n it_o have_v fail_v i_o know_v not_o unless_o by_o the_o laziness_n or_o rather_o the_o pride_n of_o teacher_n while_o they_o only_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v something_o therefore_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_a teacher_n but_o with_o they_o be_v elder_n which_o be_v not_o teacher_n and_o these_o be_v out_o of_o use_n in_o italy_n before_o the_o day_n of_o ambrose_n about_o the_o year_n 400._o but_o see_v whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o cyprian_a who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 250._o in_o lib._n 3._o epist_n 10._o he_o direct_v it_o unto_o the_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o beginning_n he_o lament_v that_o many_o of_o the_o presbyter_n be_v disperse_v in_o time_n of_o the_o persecution_n and_o near_o the_o end_n he_o say_v i_o be_o sorry_a when_o i_o hear_v that_o some_o walk_v disorderly_a and_o wicked_o and_o jar_v with_o discord_n even_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n which_o have_v open_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v defile_v with_o unlawful_a lust_n nor_o can_v be_v govern_v by_o the_o deacon_n and_o presbyter_n or_o elder_n that_o by_o the_o bad_a manner_n of_o some_o few_o the_o honest_a credit_n of_o many_o and_o good_a confessor_n be_v stain_v they_o shall_v fear_v lest_o be_v condemn_v by_o their_o own_o testimony_n and_o judgement_n they_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o society_n of_o the_o godly_a for_o he_o be_v a_o true_a and_o famous_a confessor_n of_o who_o the_o church_n afterward_o have_v not_o cause_n to_o be_v ashamed_a but_o to_o rejoice_v as_o for_o that_o particular_a which_o our_o compresbyter_n donate_n novate_v and_o curdius_n have_v write_v unto_o i_o i_o be_v alone_o can_v write_v nothing_o see_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o my_o episcopacy_n i_o have_v resolve_v to_o do_v nothing_o by_o my_o private_a judgement_n for_o sentence_n without_o your_o counsel_n and_o without_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n but_o when_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o shall_v come_v unto_o you_o then_o as_o common_a honour_n require_v we_o shall_v together_o treat_v of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v or_o be_v to_o be_v do_v hence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o though_o cyprian_a be_v a_o renown_a bishop_n yet_o he_o never_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o point_n of_o government_n by_o himself_o or_o without_o counsel_n of_o elder_n and_o deacon_n and_o without_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n no_o not_o to_o give_v advice_n in_o that_o that_o they_o do_v require_v of_o he_o and_o these_o elder_n and_o deacon_n do_v rule_v and_o censure_v when_o he_o be_v absent_a and_o he_o be_v sorry_a that_o the_o people_n do_v not_o obey_v their_o sentence_n whatsoever_o exception_n may_v be_v take_v against_o the_o word_n presbyter_n certain_o deacon_n have_v place_n in_o give_v counsel_n and_o the_o bishop_n have_v not_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o censure_n this_o be_v put_v out_o of_o doubt_n in_o the_o life_n of_o augustine_n when_o c._n 4._o possidonius_fw-la archbishop_n at_o the_o same_o time_n show_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v one_o of_o the_o presbyter_n for_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o hippon_n and_o then_o c._n 5._o the_o bishop_n valerius_n have_v experience_n of_o augustin_n gift_n give_v he_o power_n to_o preach_v and_o say_v possedo_n this_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o use_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o african_a church_n and_o therefore_o other_o bishop_n do_v revile_v he_o that_o he_o have_v give_v a_o elder_a leave_n to_o preach_v but_o the_o good_a man_n be_v content_a that_o the_o people_n be_v instruct_v see_v he_o can_v not_o deliver_v his_o mind_n so_o free_o as_o augustine_n can_v because_o he_o be_v a_o greek_a and_o he_o know_v that_o the_o eastern_a church_n have_v that_o custom_n at_o that_o time_n behold_v a_o church_n with_o one_o bishop_n &_o no_o elder_n and_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o only_a preacher_n and_o augustine_n be_v the_o first_o preach_v elder_a in_o the_o african_a church_n 3._o that_o the_o bishop_n have_v not_o the_o whole_a power_n it_o be_v clear_a as_o the_o light_n if_o we_o will_v believe_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_n as_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v show_v by_o many_o testimony_n i_o will_v name_v but_o a_o few_o basilius_n surname_v the_o great_a about_o the_o year_n 380_o in_o moral_a sum_n 71._o c._n 1._o expound_v the_o text_n 1._o tim._n 3._o and_o tit._n 1._o conjuct_o of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n as_o have_v the_o same_o office_n sedulius_n when_o hen._n oraeus_n in_o nomenclator_n call_v presbyter_n scotus_n about_o the_o year_n 440_o on_o tit._n 1._o say_v before_o that_o faction_n by_o instinct_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v in_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v say_v among_o the_o people_n i_o be_o paul_n and_o i_o be_o apollo_n the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o common_a counsel_n of_o the_o presbyter_n then_o he_o bring_v testimony_n of_o scripture_n prove_v as_o he_o conclude_v that_o among_o the_o ancient_n be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n write_v jerom._n on_o tit._n 1._o at_o great_a length_n and_o conclude_v thus_o let_v presbyter_n know_v that_o by_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o who_o be_v their_o prelate_n and_o let_v bishop_n know_v that_o by_o custom_n rather_o than_o by_o the_o lord_n appointment_n they_o be_v great_a than_o presbyter_n &_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v govern_v in_o community_n &_o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la evan._n 1._o he_o say_v whereas_o one_o be_v choose_v to_o preside_v among_o other_o it_o be_v do_v in_o remedy_n of_o schism_n lest_o each_o one_o draw_v the_o church_n unto_o himself_o it_o be_v rend_v asunder_o for_o in_o alexandria_n from_o mark_n the_o evangelist_n unto_o heraclas_n &_o dionysius_n bishop_n these_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o jerome_n the_o presbyter_n do_v always_o choose_v one_o of_o themselves_o &_o call_v he_o bishop_n when_o he_o be_v set_v in_o a_o high_a degree_n for_o except_v ordination_n what_o do_v a_o
and_o they_o come_v into_o the_o hall_n but_o he_o turn_v his_o back_n upon_o his_o guest_n and_o eat_v all_o himself_o give_v they_o no_o part_n even_o so_o do_v you_o olip_n thou_o deny_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n real_o in_o flesh_n and_o blood_n mill._n the_o scripture_n be_v not_o understand_v carnal_o but_o spiritual_o and_o your_o mass_n be_v wrong_v for_o christ_n be_v once_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n for_o man_n sin_n and_o will_v never_o be_v offer_v again_o for_o at_o that_o time_n he_o put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o sacrifice_n oliph_n thou_o deny_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n mill._n i_o affirm_v they_o who_o you_o call_v bishop_n do_v not_o bishop_n work_n nor_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n but_o live_v after_o their_o sensual_a pleasure_n take_v no_o care_n for_o christ_n flock_n nor_o regard_v his_o word_n oliph_n thou_o speak_v against_o pilgrimage_n and_o call_v it_o pilgrimage_n to_o whoordom_n mill._n i_o say_v pilgrimage_n be_v not_o command_v in_o scripture_n and_o there_o be_v no_o great_a whoordom_n in_o any_o place_n than_o at_o your_o pilgrimage_n except_o it_o be_v in_o the_o common_a brothel_n olip_n thou_o preach_v private_o in_o house_n and_o sometime_o in_o the_o field_n mill._n yea_o man_n and_o upon_o the_o sea_n too_o when_o i_o be_v sail_v olip_n if_o thou_o will_v not_o recant_v thy_o opinion_n i_o will_v pronounce_v sentence_n against_o thou_o mill_n i_o know_v i_o must_v die_v once_o therefore_o as_o christ_n say_v to_o judas_n quod_fw-la facis_fw-la fac_fw-la cito_fw-la you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o will_v not_o recant_v the_o truth_n i_o be_o corn_n and_o not_o chaff_n i_o will_v neither_o be_v blow_v away_o with_o the_o wind_n nor_o burst_v with_o the_o flail_n but_o will_v abide_v both_o then_o he_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o be_v keep_v two_o day_n because_o the_o bishop_n can_v not_o find_v a_o judge_n to_o condemn_v he_o to_o death_n the_o bishop_n send_v for_o patrick_n lermond_n of_o dairsie_n provost_n of_o the_o city_n and_o will_v he_o to_o condemn_v he_o as_o be_v now_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n the_o provost_n answer_v i_o will_v do_v any_o thing_n at_o your_o lordship_n command_v that_o belong_v to_o my_o office_n according_a to_o justice_n but_o i_o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o innocent_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o preacher_n the_o bishop_n say_v provost_z you_o be_v bailive_a of_o my_o regality_n and_o aught_o to_o judge_v all_o such_o as_o transgress_v within_o my_o bound_n he_o answer_v yes_o and_o if_o your_o lo._n please_v i_o will_v take_v he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o fair_a assize_n of_o temporal_a man_n who_o perhaps_o will_v absolve_v he_o i_o be_o conte●t_a say_v the_o bishop_n make_v i_o quite_o of_o he_o any_o way_n you_o please_v but_o some_o say_v unto_o the_o provost_n it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o absolve_v a_o man_n who_o be_v already_o by_o the_o clergy_n condemn_v of_o heresy_n wherefore_o the_o provost_n desire_v ●im_a to_o advise_v till_o the_o morn_n and_o ere_o than_o he_o go_v out_o of_o the_o town_n wherefore_o the_o bishop_n seek_v this_o man_n and_o that_o to_o be_v judge_n and_o at_o last_o set_v alexander_n somervail_v one_o of_o his_o domestic_a servant_n to_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o a_o judge_n for_o the_o time_n and_o he_o condemn_v he_o to_o the_o fire_n and_o because_o no●e_v in_o the_o town_n will_v sell_v rope_n for_o that_o use_n the_o rope_n of_o the_o bishop_n pavilion_n be_v take_v when_o they_o bring_v he_o nigh_o the_o fire_n they_o say_v unto_o he_o in_o derision_n recant_v he_o answer_v i_o marvel_v at_o your_o rage_n you_o hypocrite_n who_o so_o cruel_o do_v persecute_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n as_o for_o i_o i_o be_o 82_o year_n old_a and_o can_v not_o live_v long_o by_o course_n of_o nature_n but_o a_o hundred_o better_a than_o i_o shall_v arise_v out_o of_o the_o ash_n of_o my_o bone_n which_o shall_v scatter_v the_o proud_a pack_n of_o you_o hypocrite_n and_o persecuter_n of_o god_n servant_n and_o who_o of_o you_o think_v yourself_o worthy_a shall_v not_o die_v so_o honest_a a_o death_n as_o i_o die_v now_o i_o trust_v in_o god_n i_o shall_v be_v the_o last_o that_o shall_v suffer_v death_n in_o this_o land_n for_o this_o cause_n out_o of_o a_o manuscript_n history_n write_v by_o lindsay_n in_o the_o bibliothek_v of_o the_o college_n of_o edinburgh_n oliphant_n command_v he_o to_o go_v unto_o the_o stake_n mill_n say_v i_o will_v not_o go_v unless_o thou_o put_v i_o up_o with_o thy_o hand_n for_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n i_o be_o forbid_v to_o put_v hand_n in_o myself_o but_o will_v thou_o putto_fw-mi thy_o hand_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v i_o go_v up_o glad_o oliphant_n put_v he_o forward_o and_o he_o go_v with_o a_o cheerful_a countenance_n say_v introibo_fw-la ad_fw-la a●tare_fw-la dei_fw-la than_o he_o crave_v liberty_n to_o speak_v unto_o the_o people_n oliphant_n say_v you_o have_v speak_v too_o much_o and_o the_o bishop_n be_v offend_v with_o so_o long_o delay_v some_o youth_n standing-by_a will_v he_o to_o speak_v and_o accurse_v the_o bishop_n and_o all_o the_o executioner_n he_o first_o pray_v and_o speak_v unto_o the_o people_n to_o this_o purpose_n dear_a friend_n the_o cause_n why_o i_o suffer_v tooday_o be_v not_o for_o any_o crime_n lay_v to_o my_o charge_n i_o acknowledge_v myself_o a_o miserable_a sinner_n before_o god_n but_o i_o suffer_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n for_o which_o as_o many_o martyr_n have_v offer_v their_o life_n most_o glad_o be_v assure_v after_o their_o death_n to_o enjoy_v endless_a felicity_n so_o this_o day_n i_o praise_v god_n that_o he_o have_v call_v i_o of_o his_o mercy_n among_o other_o his_o servant_n to_o seal_v up_o his_o truth_n with_o my_o life_n which_o as_o i_o have_v receive_v of_o he_o so_o willing_o i_o offer_v it_o to_o his_o glory_n and_o as_o you_o will_v escape_v eternal_a death_n be_v no_o more_o delude_v with_o the_o lie_v of_o the_o priest_n monk_n friar_n prior_n abbot_n bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o antichrist_n but_o depend_v only_o upon_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o mercy_n that_o you_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o condemnation_n the_o people_n make_v great_a lamentation_n and_o be_v exceed_o move_v with_o his_o word_n when_o the_o fire_n be_v kindle_v he_o cry_v lord_n have_v mercy_n on_o i_o pray_v good_a people_n while_o there_o be_v time_n and_o thus_o he_o depart_v show_v a_o wonderful_a courage_n his_o death_n be_v the_o very_a death_n of_o popery_n in_o this_o realm_n for_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v so_o great_o inflame_v that_o resolve_v open_o to_o profess_v the_o truth_n ●hey_n do_v bind_v themselves_o by_o promise_n a●d_a subscription_n of_o oath_n if_o any_o shall_v be_v call_v into_o question_n for_o religion_n hereafter_o they_o shall_v take_v arm_n and_o join_v in_o defence_n of_o their_o brethren_n against_o the_o tyrannous_a and_o persecute_v bishop_n vii_o immediate_o some_o noble_a man_n and_o baron_n do_v present_a unto_o the_o regent_n a_o supplication_n unto_o the_o queen_n regent_n queen_n regent_n this_o supplication_n the_o copy_n whereof_o i_o find_v in_o fair_a write_v as_o sundri●e_v other_o paper_n concern_v these_o time_n among_o the_o paper_n of_o john_n erskin_n superintendent_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o great_a grandchild_n alexander_n enskin_v of_o dun_n with_o this_o inscription_n the_o subject_n of_o this_o rea●m_n of_o scot_n and_o wish_n unto_o the_o most_o excellent_a princess_n mary_n queen_n dourier_n and_o regent_n all_o felicity_n most_o noble_a princess_n it_o be_v not_o unknown_a unto_o your_o majesty_n our_o ard●ent_a desire_n to_o see_v the_o name_n of_o god_n glorify_v in_o this_o our_o native_a country_n and_o we_o have_v often_o make_v humble_a suit_n unto_o your_o grace_n to_o have_v your_o good_a will_n and_o protection_n to_o live_v quiet_o in_o free_a conscience_n without_o oppression_n of_o tyranny_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o our_o god_n make_v manifest_a to_o we_o in_o his_o holy_a scripture_n and_o because_o some_o man_n which_o most_o minust_o have_v enter_v themselves_o by_o title_n and_o name_n as_o minister_n of_o god_n kirk_n be_v conspire_v together_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o anointed_n to_o put_v down_o his_o name_n and_o honour_n and_o to_o maintain_v most_o odious_a abomination_n we_o have_v forsake_v they_o and_o their_o detestable_a ministry_n know_v they_o to_o be_v accurse_v of_o god_n and_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v receive_v such_o minister_n as_o with_o humble_a mind_n submit_v themselves_o their_o doctrine_n and_o ministry_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o
by_o our_o master_n christ_n jesus_n we_o be_v teach_v in_o these_o word_n in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o precept_n of_o man_n so_o without_o respect_n of_o man_n those_o do_v cleave_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v judge_v what_o soever_o be_v without_o the_o word_n either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o religious_a worship_n or_o in_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n can_v not_o be_v accept_v of_o god_n as_o service_n when_o he_o require_v it_o not_o but_o england_n upon_o account_n that_o those_o who_o have_v be_v enure_v with_o popish_a doctrine_n and_o superstition_n may_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o allure_v to_o forsake_v that_o doctrine_n if_o the_o rite_n and_o discipline_n be_v retain_v and_o hope_v as_o be_v hint_v in_o the_o former_a part_n that_o by_o time_n a_o more_o perfect_a reformation_n may_v be_v attain_v take_v this_o prudential_a course_n as_o it_o be_v call_v trust_v especial_o that_o bishop_n and_o priest_n may_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o enduce_v to_o join_v with_o the_o reformation_n so_o both_o in_o the_o confession_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n and_o in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o convocation_n an._n 1564._o or_o according_a to_o the_o english_a style_n 1563._o they_o allow_v liberty_n unto_o dissent_v judgement_n and_o make_v large_a expression_n and_o capacious_a word_n be_v loath_a to_o drive_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n any_o who_o differ_v in_o the_o branch_n meet_v in_o the_o main_a ground_n of_o religion_n those_o thing_n that_o be_v retain_v upon_o such_o plausible_a motive_n have_v a_o twofold_a influence_n such_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o humane_a corruption_n to_o wit_n 1._o one_o superstition_n draweth-on_a another_o as_o a_o link_n of_o a_o chain_n if_o this_o may_v be_v use_v why_o not_o that_o 2._o what_o be_v at_o first_o retain_v by_o way_n of_o toleration_n &_o condescension_n be_v afterward_o press_v upon_o man_n conscience_n by_o authority_n that_o man_n must_v conform_v in_o practice_n of_o rite_n and_o to_o the_o opinion_n of_o superior_n or_o suffer_v punishment_n the_o first_o particular_a exception_n be_v make_v by_o the_o papist_n against_o the_o cause_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o supreme_a judge_n in_o all_o cause_n title_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o king_n henry_n and_o the_o supreme_a judge_n in_o cause_n ecelesiastical_a which_o be_v give_v unto_o queen_n elisabet_fw-la they_o except_v against_o this_o always_o but_o the_o first_o that_o have_v write_v of_o it_o be_v harding_n in_o his_o pretend_a refutation_n of_o england_n confession_n bishop_n jewel_n answer_v he_o in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o apolog._n part_n 6._o cap._n 11._o divis_fw-la 1._o say_v concern_v the_o title_n the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n we_o need_v not_o search_v the_o scripture_n to_o excuse_v it_o for_o 1._o we_o devise_v it_o not_o 2._o we_o use_v it_o not_o 3._o our_o prince_n at_o this_o time_n claim_v it_o not_o your_o father_n first_o enritule_v that_o noble_a prince_n king_n henry_n viii_o with_o that_o unused_a and_o strange_a style_n as_o it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v the_o rather_o to_o bring_v he_o into_o the_o talk_n and_o slander_n of_o the_o world_n howbeit_o that_o the_o prince_n be_v the_o high_a judge_n and_o governor_n over_o all_o his_o subject_n whatsoever_o alswel_o priest_n as_o layman_n without_o exception_n etc._n etc._n he_o insist_o at_o length_n upon_o this_o purpose_n as_o also_o doct._n fulk_n against_o the_o rhemists_n annotation_n on_o matth._n 22._o and_o other_o i_o shall_v add_v the_o answer_n of_o thom._n bilson_n sometime_o warden_n of_o wincester_n unto_o the_o jesuit_n apolog._n lib._n 2._o where_o the_o jesuit_n or_o philander_n say_v you_o will_v have_v our_o faith_n and_o salvation_n so_o to_o hang_v on_o the_o prince_n will_v and_o law_n as_o if_o there_o can_v be_v no_o near_a way_n to_o religion_n then_o to_o believe_v what_o our_o temporal_a lord_n and_o master_n listen_v he_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o cunning_a when_o you_o can_v not_o confute_v your_o adversary_n at_o least_o to_o belie_v they_o that_o you_o may_v seem_v at_o least_o to_o say_v somewhat_o against_o they_o indeed_o your_o four_o chapter_n be_v whole_o spend_v in_o refel_v this_o position_n which_o we_o detest_v as_o much_o as_o you_o philander_n repli_v you_o begin_v to_o shrink_v from_o your_o former_a teach_n he_o answer_v in_o name_n of_o theophilus_n you_o will_v never_o shrink_v from_o your_o former_a face_n do_v ever_o any_o man_n on_o our_o side_n affirm_v the_o prince_n will_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n have_v we_o not_o earnest_o write_v and_o open_o teach_v that_o religion_n must_v not_o depend_v on_o the_o pleasure_n of_o man_n have_v not_o thousand_o here_o in_o england_n and_o elsewhere_o give_v our_o life_n for_o the_o witness_n and_o confession_n of_o god_n truth_n against_o prince_n law_n and_o pope_n decree_n in_o spain_n france_n and_o italy_n and_o other_o place_n at_o this_o day_n do_v we_o not_o endure_v all_o the_o torment_v you_o can_v devise_v because_o we_o will_v not_o believe_v what_o temporal_a lord_n and_o master_n will_v your_o conscience_n know_v it_o be_v ttue_n that_o we_o say_v why_o do_v you_o then_o charge_v we_o with_o this_o wicked_a assertion_n from_o which_o we_o be_v far_o off_o than_o you_o for_o you_o hold_v opinion_n of_o pope_n they_o can_v not_o err_v we_o do_v not_o of_o prince_n why_o do_v you_o father_n your_o fancy_n upon_o we_o why_o do_v you_o purposely_o pervert_v the_o question_n heap_v absurdity_n and_o allege_v authority_n against_o that_o which_o we_o do_v not_o defend_v philander_n the_o oath_n which_o you_o take_v yourselves_o and_o exact_v of_o other_o induce_v we_o thus_o to_o think_v of_o you_o for_o there_o you_o make_v prince_n the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o all_o person_n in_o all_o cause_n aswell_o spiritual_a as_o temporal_a utter_o renounce_v all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n and_o superiority_n upon_o which_o word_n mark_v what_o a_o horrible_a confusion_n follow_v if_o prince_n be_v the_o only_a governor_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n then_o in_o vain_a do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n appoint_v pastor_n and_o bishop_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n if_o they_o be_v supreme_a then_o be_v they_o superior_a to_o christ_n himself_o and_o in_o effect_n christ_n master_n if_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o cause_n spiritual_a than_o they_o may_v prescribe_v unto_o the_o priest_n and_o bishop_n what_o to_o preach_v and_o which_o way_n to_o worship_n and_o serve_v god_n how_o and_o in_o what_o form_n to_o minister_n the_o sacrament_n and_o general_o how_o man_n shall_v be_v govern_v in_o soul_n if_o all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n be_v renounce_v than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n because_o they_o be_v and_o be_v foreigner_n have_v no_o jurisdiction_n nor_o authority_n over_o england_n theophilus_n wake_v you_o or_o dream_v you_o that_o in_o matter_n of_o no_o less_o weight_n than_o your_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o the_o prince_n you_o fall_v to_o these_o childish_a and_o pelt_a sophism_n what_o kind_n of_o conclude_v call_v you_o this_o prince_n only_o bear_v the_o sword_n to_o command_v and_o punish_v ergo_fw-la bishop_n may_v not_o teach_v and_o exhort_v prince_n be_v not_o subject_a unto_o the_o pope_n ergo_fw-la superior_n to_o christ_n they_o may_v by_o their_o law_n establish_v what_o christ_n have_v command_v ergo_fw-la they_o may_v change_v both_o scripture_n and_o sacrament_n no_o foreigner_n at_o this_o this_o day_n have_v jurisdiction_n over_o this_o land_n ergo_fw-la christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n 1500._o year_n ago_o may_v not_o preach_v the_o gospel_n philand_n we_o make_v no_o such_o reason_n t●eop_n the_o former_a proposition_n be_v the_o true_a content_n of_o the_o oath_n we_o take_v the_o late_a be_v the_o very_a absurdity_n which_o you_o infer_v upon_o we_o fortake_v the_o oath_n ....._o philan._n do_v you_o not_o make_v prince_n supreme_a governor_n of_o all_o spiritual_a thing_n theoph._n you_o reason_n as_o if_o we_o do_v but_o ourword_n since_o you_o will_v rest_v upon_o word_n be_v not_o so_o philan._n what_o be_v they_o then_o theoph._n we_o confess_v they_o to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n of_o their_o realm_n and_o dominion_n philan._n and_o that_o in_o all_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o cause_n philan._n not_o of_o all_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o cause_n philan._n what_o difference_n between_o those_o two_o speech_n theoph._n just_o as_o much_o as_o exclude_v your_o wrangle_n we_o make_v they_o not_o governor_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o but_o of_o their_o subject_n which_o i_o trust_v you_o there_fw-mi notwithstand_v philan._n i_o grant_v they_o be_v governor_n of_o their_o subject_n burr_n not_o in_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n or_o cause_n ....._o theoph._n where_o we_o profess_v that_o her_o highness_n be_v the_o only_a governor_n of_o
spiritual_a alliance_n do_v accurse_v the_o man_n who_o shall_v marry_v his_o godmother_n grego_n decreta_fw-la 6._o boniface_n v._o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v a_o man_n of_o singular_a virtue_n and_o bountifulness_n especial_o towards_o those_o of_o the_o clergy_n who_o be_v most_o vigilant_a in_o their_o call_n he_o ordain_v that_o so_o great_a reverence_n shall_v be_v have_v unto_o the_o impiety_n church_n a_o refuge_n of_o impiety_n place_n of_o god_n worship_n that_o whosoever_o shall_v take_v his_o refuge_n into_o a_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v take_v by_o force_n make_v the_o law_n of_o god_n against_o murderer_n and_o such_o ungodly_a man_n to_o be_v of_o no_o effect_n by_o his_o tradition_n because_o he_o love_v they_o who_o bring_v say_v i._n beda_n in_o catal._n scriptor_n illust_n and_o that_o sacrilegious_a sacrilege_n except_o sacrilege_n person_n shall_v be_v accurse_v for_o he_o hate_v they_o who_o take_v away_o in_o his_o time_n testament_n be_v of_o strength_n when_o they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o magistrate_n but_o his_o successor_n will_v have_v this_o power_n to_o themselves_o his_o epistle_n direct_v to_o england_n as_o in_o beda_n history_n wherein_o be_v sundry_a passage_n fight_v against_o the_o perfection_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n he_o sit_v 5._o year_n and_o die_v a_o 622._o 7._o honorius_n i._o be_v a_o monothelite_n onuphrius_n in_o annot._n in_o platin._n heresy_n a_o pope_n condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr ro._n pont._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 11._o will_v purge_v he_o of_o this_o blot_n by_o the_o epistle_n of_o a_o monk_n maximus_n and_o of_o emanuel_n caleca_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 1274._o they_o can_v deny_v that_o they_o see_v in_o the_o most_o common_a book_n of_o counsel_n this_o heresy_n impute_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n as_o also_o the_o epistle_n of_o sergius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n unto_o honorius_n and_o of_o honorius_n to_o sergius_n be_v read_v in_o the_o twelve_o action_n or_o session_n and_o in_o the_o sixteenth_o action_n they_o both_o be_v accurse_v for_o that_o heresy_n and_o in_o the_o seventeen_o a_o confession_n be_v publish_v contrary_a to_o the_o error_n of_o the_o monothelite_n and_o after_o the_o confession_n honorius_n pope_n of_o old_a rome_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o heretic_n see_v hereafter_o in_o leo_n ii_o and_o some_o among_o the_o romanist_n stick_v not_o to_o call_v he_o a_o heretic_n as_o melc_n canus_n in_o loc_n theol._n li._n 6._o c._n 8._o platina_n make_v mention_n of_o his_o great_a care_n in_o building_n of_o church_n and_o transport_v ornament_n from_o the_o temple_n of_o jupiter_n capitolinus_n into_o the_o church_n of_o st._n peter_n but_o nothing_o of_o his_o spiritual_a building_n he_o appoint_v procession_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n whence_o be_v the_o compass_v of_o church_n catal._n test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 9_o he_o sit_v 12._o year_n and_o then_o the_o seat_n be_v vacant_a 1._o year_n and_o 7._o month_n 8._o severinus_n be_v confirm_v by_o isaacius_n eparch_v of_o ravenna_n pope_n election_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v naught_o till_o he_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o emperor_n or_o his_o eparch_n platin._n isaacius_n come_v to_o rome_n for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o see_v great_a treasure_n in_o the_o lateran_n church_n he_o take_v it_o all_o away_o because_o the_o soldier_n be_v in_o great_a necessity_n in_o time_n of_o the_o war_n against_o the_o sara●ens_n yet_o he_o give_v only_o a_o part_n of_o it_o to_o the_o soldier_n and_o send_v the_o rest_n to_o ravenna_n whence_o he_o send_v a_o part_n unto_o the_o emperor_n like_v unto_o all_o other_o pope_n severinus_n be_v more_o careful_a of_o house_n then_o of_o soul_n platin._n he_o by_o epistle_n reprove_v the_o scot_n for_o observe_v penticost_n or_o easter_n on_o another_o day_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o his_o reproof_n have_v no_o place_n there_o because_o they_o be_v not_o accustom_v with_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o romish_a bishop_n say_v catal._n test_n ver_fw-la he_o sit_v 1._o year_n 2._o month_n beda_n hist_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 19_o have_v write_v saviour_n none_o free_a of_o original_a sin_n except_o our_o saviour_n a_o epistle_n at_o this_o time_n thus_o unto_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o most_o holy_a the_o scotch_a bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o other_o doctor_n and_o abbot_n hilarius_n arch_a priest_n and_o keep_v the_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a apostolical_a see_v john_n a_o deacon_n and_o choose_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o john_n primicerius_fw-la and_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v and_o john_n a_o servant_n and_o counsellor_n of_o the_o same_o apostolical_a see_n the_o writing_n which_o the_o bearer_n bring_v unto_o pope_n gregory_n of_o good_a memory_n he_o depart_v this_o life_n have_v not_o be_v answer_v till_o now_o which_o be_v open_v lest_o the_o mist_n of_o so_o great_a a_o question_n shall_v continue_v ......_o hereby_o we_o know_v that_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n begin_v to_o revive_v among_o you_o wherefore_o we_o exhort_v you_o earnest_o that_o so_o venomous_a a_o work_n of_o superstition_n be_v put_v from_o your_o mind_n for_o it_o can_v be_v unknown_a unto_o you_o how_o that_o execrable_a heresy_n be_v damn_v see_v it_o have_v not_o only_o be_v abolish_v out_o this_o 240._o year_n but_o it_o be_v also_o daily_o condemn_v by_o we_o by_o a_o perpetual_a anathema_n and_o be_v bury_v and_o we_o exhort_v that_o among_o you_o their_o ash_n be_v not_o stir_v up_o who_o weapon_n be_v burn_v for_o who_o will_v not_o abhor_v the_o proud_a and_o wicked_a attempt_n of_o they_o who_o say_v a_o man_n may_v be_v without_o sin_n by_o his_o proper_a will_n and_o not_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o indeed_o the_o first_o foolish_a say_n of_o blasphemy_n be_v to_o say_v a_o man_n be_v without_o sin_n which_o can_v be_v except_o the_o only_a mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v without_o sin_n for_o other_o man_n be_v bear_v with_o original_a sin_n be_v know_v to_o bear_v the_o testimony_n of_o adam_n transgression_n even_o they_o who_o be_v without_o actual_a sin_n according_a to_o the_o prophet_n say_v behold_v i_o be_v conceive_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n have_v my_o mother_n bear_v i_o what_o may_v be_v collect_v out_o of_o this_o epistle_n i_o leave_v unto_o all_o judicious_a reader_n only_o i_o will_v that_o this_o be_v remark_v that_o in_o the_o inscription_n they_o observe_v the_o stile_n and_o phrase_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n direct_v their_o letter_n unto_o the_o scotch_a bishop_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o neither_o at_o that_o time_n nor_o many_o age_n thereafter_o be_v any_o bishop_n in_o scotland_n but_o only_a abbot_n who_o be_v doctor_n and_o presbyter_n in_o several_a congregation_n 9_o john_n iv_o bestow_v all_o the_o treasure_n that_o isaacius_n and_o severine_n have_v leave_v on_o the_o redeem_n of_o some_o captive_n of_o his_o nation_n dalmatia_n and_o istria_n from_o the_o lombard_n he_o transport_v the_o body_n of_o vincentius_n and_o anastasius_n relic_n relic_n martyr_n from_o dalmatia_n to_o rome_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o enemy_n to_o the_o superstition_n of_o a_o more_o eminent_a place_n in_o his_o time_n lotharis_n king_n of_o the_o lombard_n a_o good_a justiciary_a and_o arrian_n do_v permit_v in_o every_o city_n of_o his_o kingdom_n two_o bishop_n one_o catholic_n as_o they_o speak_v then_o or_o orthodox_n and_o another_o arrian_n john_n sit_v 1._o year_n 9_o month_n 10._o theodorus_n i._n the_o son_n of_o theodorus_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n not_o pretend_a authority_n avail_v not_o strive_v against_o paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n because_o he_o be_v a_o monothelite_n and_o seek_v his_o deprivation_n but_o in_o vain_a for_o he_o deal_v by_o authority_n and_o not_o by_o scripture_n or_o reason_n and_o paul_n despise_v his_o authority_n lotharis_n say_v he_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o ambition_n and_o not_o inspire_v by_o a_o good_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o he_o contemn_v he_o also_o say_v he_o foster_v many_o error_n and_o reprove_v one_o only_o he_o dissuade_v the_o emperor_n constans_n from_o the_o error_n of_o the_o monothelite_n therefore_o the_o emperor_n seek_v his_o life_n thereafter_o all_o his_o care_n be_v to_o adorn_v and_o adore_v the_o body_n of_o the_o depart_a saint_n and_o their_o relic_n he_o die_v a_o 647._o 11._o martin_n i._o augment_v the_o number_n of_o holy_a day_n he_o command_v rite_n new_a rite_n the_o priest_n to_o shave_v their_o hair_n continual_o and_o that_o each_o bishop_n shall_v consecrate_v the_o chrism_n or_o holy_a ode_n yearly_a and_o send_v it_o through_o all_o the_o parish_n of_o his_o diocy_n and_o that_o all_o the_o clergy_n shall_v at_o their_o
make_v know_v unto_o god_n and_o lib._n 8._o ep._n 36._o they_o who_o come_v after_o we_o will_v see_v worse_a time_n so_o that_o in_o comparison_n of_o their_o time_n they_o will_v judge_v that_o we_o have_v have_v happy_a day_n yea_o gregory_n not_o only_o foresee_v they_o gregory_n devise_v new_a rite_n yet_o ti_v not_o other_o unto_o they_o this_o defection_n but_o he_o be_v not_o the_o least_o agent_n in_o multiply_v new_a rite_n he_o do_v frame_v a_o new_a order_n of_o divine_a service_n or_o as_o they_o call_v it_o a_o new_a mass_n where_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o former_a manner_n do_v not_o please_v he_o and_o li._n 7._o indict_v 2._o ep._n 63._o he_o show_v that_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n both_o greek_n and_o latin_n do_v grumble_v against_o it_o and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o epistle_n it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o he_o say_v nevertheless_o if_o that_o of_o constantinople_n or_o any_o other_o church_n have_v any_o good_a i_o be_o ready_a to_o follow_v in_o goodness_n even_o my_o inferior_n to_o who_o i_o forbid_v unlawful_a thing_n for_o he_o be_v a_o fool_n who_o think_v himself_o chief_a and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o learn_v the_o good_a thing_n that_o he_o see_v and_o when_o augustine_n who_o he_o send_v into_o britain_n do_v ask_v he_o see_v the_o faith_n be_v one_o why_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n diverse_a and_o why_o be_v one_o sort_n of_o mass_n in_o rome_n and_o another_o in_o france_n gregory_n answer_v thy_o brotherhood_n know_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o you_o have_v be_v nourish_v but_o it_o please_v i_o that_o whether_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o france_n or_o in_o any_o other_o thou_o have_v see_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v more_o please_v the_o almighty_a god_n that_o thou_o diligent_o follow_v it_o and_o in_o that_o church_n of_o the_o english_a which_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v new_a they_o ordain_v the_o best_a thing_n that_o thou_o have_v see_v in_o many_o church_n for_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v love_v for_o the_o place_n but_o the_o place_n must_v be_v love_v for_o the_o good_a thing_n therefore_o choose_v thou_o out_o of_o every_o church_n what_o thing_n be_v godly_a pious_a and_o right_a and_o these_o be_v gather_v into_o a_o bundle_n put_v thou_o into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o english_a for_o custom_n interrog_n august_n resp_n 3._o whence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o although_o gregory_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o mass_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o bind_v all_o man_n to_o follow_v it_o nor_o any_o other_o ceremony_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o augustin_n six_o question_n he_o say_v the_o holy_a law_n forbid_v to_o uncover_v the_o filthiness_n kindred_n degree_n of_o kindred_n of_o kindred_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a now_o that_o the_o three_o and_o four_o degree_n may_v lawful_o marry_v but_o shall_v altogether_o abstain_v from_o the_o second_o here_o he_o wre_v scripture_n and_o restrain_v the_o degree_n which_o god_n permit_v then_o augustine_n ask_v in_o his_o 7._o question_n whether_o those_o who_o be_v so_o unlawful_o marry_v shall_v be_v command_v to_o divorce_v and_o shall_v be_v deny_v of_o the_o communion_n gregory_n answer_v because_o many_o in_o that_o nation_n while_o they_o be_v infidel_n be_v mix_v in_o that_o unlawful_a marriage_n when_o they_o come_v into_o the_o faith_n they_o be_v to_o be_v admonish_v to_o abstain_v and_o let_v they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o heinous_a sin_n let_v they_o tremble_v at_o the_o fearful_a judgement_n of_o god_n lest_o for_o their_o carnal_a pleasure_n they_o suffer_v everlasting_a torment_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n lest_o we_o seem_v to_o revenge_v on_o they_o the_o thing_n whereunto_o they_o have_v bind_v themselves_o in_o their_o ignorance_n before_o the_o laurel_n of_o baptism_n for_o at_o this_o time_n the_o holy_a church_n correct_v some_o thing_n in_o zeal_n suffer_v some_o thing_n in_o meekness_n dissemble_v some_o thing_n in_o prudence_n that_o oft_o by_o tolerance_n and_o connivance_n she_o may_v amend_v the_o ill_n which_o she_o hate_v but_o all_o they_o who_o embrace_v the_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v admonish_v that_o they_o do_v not_o such_o a_o thing_n and_o if_o they_o shall_v then_o do_v it_o they_o be_v to_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n here_o be_v a_o good_a advice_n in_o this_o but_o still_o he_o aim_v at_o his_o own_o conceit_n he_o devise_v a_o superstitious_a manner_n of_o consecrate_v church_n which_o the_o posterity_n have_v change_v he_o do_v foster_v the_o fond_a conceit_n of_o man_n by_o too_o credulous_a believe_v the_o false_a miracle_n of_o his_o time_n say_v m._n canus_n in_o theol._n gregor_n in_o vita_fw-la gregor_n loc_fw-la lib._n 11._o cap._n 6._o he_o pray_v for_o deliver_v the_o soul_n of_o trajan_n out_o of_o hell_n pope_n siricius_n who_o live_v a_o 387._o be_v the_o first_o who_o contradict_v marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o deacon_n gratian._n do_v 82._o and_o forbid_v their_o society_n with_o their_o wife_n who_o they_o have_v marry_v and_o pope_n pelagius_n do_v ordain_v that_o deacon_n who_o have_v wife_n shall_v either_o put_v they_o away_o or_o leave_v their_o benefice_n ibid._n but_o then_o pope_n gregory_n judge_v it_o contrary_a unto_o the_o gospel_n to_o put_v away_o a_o wife_n unless_o it_o be_v for_o fornication_n and_o he_o ordain_v that_o no_o sub-deacon_n shall_v be_v admit_v unless_o he_o promise_v chastity_n and_o he_o think_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o bring_v single_a life_n upon_o the_o clergy_n see_v they_o must_v be_v deacon_n ere_o they_o be_v priest_n pol._n verg._n de_fw-fr invent_v rer_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 4._o nevertheless_o afterward_o when_o he_o find_v that_o priest_n live_v not_o continentlie_o and_o thereby_o many_o child_n be_v murder_v as_o he_o see_v 6000._o head_n of_o child_n take_v out_o of_o a_o pond_n see_v hereafter_o in_o the_o 9_o centurie_n in_o the_o epistle_n of_o huldricus_n bishop_n of_o augusta_n he_o annull_v his_o own_o act_n and_o say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v then_o to_o burn_v and_o murder_v he_o be_v credulous_a of_o purgatory_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v for_o these_o and_o other_o conceit_n gregory_n be_v call_v worse_a than_o any_o of_o his_o predecessor_n but_o for_o his_o soundness_n in_o other_o article_n and_o for_o his_o virtue_n worthy_a of_o praise_n he_o be_v commend_v above_o all_o his_o successor_n for_o he_o teach_v far_o otherwise_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v now_o in_o lib._n 4._o ep._n 40._o he_o persuade_v leander_n a_o physician_n to_o diligent_a doctrine_n the_o faith_n of_o gregory_n for_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o upon_o such_o reason_n that_o concern_v all_o man_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o epistle_n send_v from_o god_n to_o his_o creature_n if_o thou_o receive_v a_o letter_n from_o a_o earthly_a king_n thou_o will_v not_o rest_v nor_o sleep_n till_o thou_o understand_v it_o but_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n and_o god_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n have_v send_v his_o letter_n unto_o thou_o for_o the_o good_a of_o thy_o soul_n and_o yet_o thou_o neglecte_v the_o read_n of_o they_o i_o pray_v thou_o therefore_o study_v they_o and_o meditate_v daily_o on_o the_o word_n of_o thy_o creator_n and_o in_o the_o preface_n on_o job_n unto_o bishop_n leander_n cap._n 4._o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v milk_n for_o babe_n and_o meat_n for_o the_o strong_a there_o be_v a_o river_n plain_a and_o deep_a wherein_o lamb_n may_v wade_v and_o elephant_n may_v swim_v he_o have_v the_o same_o again_o in_o ezek._n lib._n 1._o hom_n 9_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o he_o say_v whatsoever_o serve_v for_o edification_n and_o instruction_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o job_n lib._n 19_o cap._n 17._o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n be_v not_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o he_o permit_v a_o excuse_n of_o cite_v a_o testimony_n out_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n he_o do_v not_o inordinate_o herein_o because_o they_o be_v write_v for_o edification_n albeit_o they_o be_v not_o canonical_a again_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 7._o he_o say_v our_o righteousness_n be_v find_v to_o be_v unrighteous_a when_o it_o be_v narrow_o examine_v and_o it_o stink_v in_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o judge_n which_o glister_v in_o the_o esteem_n of_o the_o worker_n and_o lib._n 18._o cap._n 25._o some_o rejoice_v in_o their_o own_o power_n and_o they_o do_v glory_n that_o they_o be_v redeem_v by_o their_o precede_a merit_n who_o assertion_n certain_o be_v contrary_a to_o itself_o for_o while_o they_o say_v they_o be_v innocent_a and_o redeem_v
more_o and_o more_o and_o the_o church_n be_v wondrous_o darken_v with_o man_n tradition_n apparition_n of_o spirit_n be_v frequent_a which_o when_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n do_v receive_v they_o be_v deceive_v and_o make_v no_o small_a apostasy_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n into_o the_o confidence_n of_o merit_n and_o man_n satisfaction_n so_o that_o john_n de_fw-fr molin_n in_o specul_n carmel_n cap._n 6._o have_v true_o observe_v that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n heraclius_n unto_o his_o own_o time_n the_o day_n decline_v to_o the_o evening_n and_o the_o church_n have_v suffer_v a_o eclipse_n yea_o and_o almost_o make_v defection_n io._n bal._n cent_n 1._o 74._o appr_fw-la 2._o about_o these_o time_n say_v another_o man_n be_v as_o it_o be_v make_v for_o barbarity_n and_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n in_o who_o book_n be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o act_n of_o antiquity_n be_v forsake_v through_o negligence_n do_v suffer_v another_o and_o worse_a death_n in_o all_o which_o follow_v calamity_n the_o monk_n be_v not_o the_o least_o agent_n for_o when_o the_o monkish_a life_n be_v have_v in_o admiration_n the_o pope_n thought_n they_o the_o fit_a instrument_n in_o prosecute_a their_o pleasure_n before_o that_o time_n they_o have_v not_o authority_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n as_o may_v be_v see_v at_o length_n in_o gratian._n cause_n 16._o especial_o qu._n 1._o cap._n adjicimus_fw-la there_o be_v a_o ordinance_n of_o pope_n leo_n i._o that_o none_o but_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v preach_v the_o word_n whether_o he_o be_v a_o monk_n or_o laic_a whatsoever_o measure_n of_o knowledge_n he_o have_v and_o cap._n hinc_fw-la est_fw-la etiam_fw-la it_o be_v say_v the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n testify_v that_o until_o the_o day_n of_o eusebius_n losinius_n and_o siricius_n monk_n be_v only_a monk_n and_o not_o clergy_n and_o gregory_n lib._n 4._o ep._n 1._o no_o man_n can_v serve_v in_o the_o office_n of_o a_o churchman_n and_o continue_v in_o a_o monkish_a rule_n ordinary_o and_o they_o all_o be_v laic_n except_o the_o abbot_n say_v bellarmin_n de_fw-fr monac_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o and_o spalaten_v de_fw-fr rep._n eccles_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 12._o prove_v it_o at_o length_n but_o they_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o parish_n in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n or_o if_o they_o be_v many_o they_o have_v their_o own_o priest_n as_o epiphanius_n ordain_v paulinian_n priest_n of_o saint_n jerom_n monastery_n bellarm._n do_v not_o eccles_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 10._o but_o pope_n boniface_n the_o iv_o give_v they_o liberty_n to_o preach_v and_o his_o successor_n give_v they_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v and_o although_o they_o have_v not_o charge_n of_o soul_n they_o make_v they_o equal_a in_o power_n every_o where_o with_o the_o priest_n in_o their_o own_o parish_n gratian._n cause_n 16._o qu._n 1._o sunt_fw-la tamen_fw-la they_o do_v cloak_v their_o idleness_n with_o profession_n of_o poverty_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o saint_n basil_n augustine_n and_o other_o father_n which_o rule_v of_o the_o late_a monk_n be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o father_n that_o they_o never_o have_v dream_v any_o such_o thing_n can_v follow_v say_v pol._n vergil_n de_fw-mi invent_v rer_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 3._o for_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n monk_n have_v nothing_o of_o their_o own_o neither_o do_v live_v chargeable_o unto_o other_o but_o upon_o the_o work_n of_o their_o hand_n and_o they_o give_v their_o work_n unto_o their_o decanus_n say_v august_n de_fw-fr mori_fw-la eccles_n cathol_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 31._o and_o in_o reg._n 2._o tradita_fw-la fratrib_n cap._n 2._o he_o command_v they_o to_o read_v some_o hour_n to_o pray_v some_o hour_n and_o to_o work_v some_o hour_n chrysost_n hom_n 59_o ad_fw-la pop_n antioch_n say_v they_o know_v not_o beg_v and_o bellarm._n the_o monast_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 43._o and_o durae_fw-la contr_n whitak_n fol._n 387._o out_o of_o jerom_n epiphanius_n and_o other_o show_v that_o all_o the_o monk_n in_o old_a time_n do_v work_v as_o the_o apostle_n have_v command_v except_o one_o monastery_n of_o saint_n martin_n so_o write_v basil_n in_o exercit_fw-la ser_fw-mi 4._o but_o in_o the_o seven_o centurie_n they_o have_v fair_a cloister_n princely_a abbey_n rich_a revenue_n and_o what_o do_v they_o not_o purchase_v but_o no_o work_n at_o all_o among_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o so_o that_o bernard_n cry_v in_o apolog._n ad_fw-la guil._n abbot_n o_o how_o far_o different_a be_v we_o from_o the_o monk_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antonius_n and_o in_o epist_n 42._o he_o say_v work_n dark_a place_n voluntary_a poverty_n these_o do_v nobilitate_v monk_n but_o your_o eye_n behold_v every_o thing_n your_o foot_n tread_v in_o every_o market_n your_o tongue_n be_v hear_v in_o all_o counsel_n your_o hand_n do_v pull_v unto_o you_o every_o patrimony_n as_o they_o be_v not_o slothful_a in_o their_o own_o affair_n so_o when_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n begin_v to_o have_v more_o care_n of_o policy_n preferment_n and_o such_o earthly_a thing_n and_o each_o one_o to_o strive_v against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o another_o more_o than_o they_o do_v study_v the_o scripture_n then_o the_o benedictines_n and_o afterward_o other_o sort_n of_o hypocrite_n be_v send_v under_o colour_n of_o preach_v christ_n but_o indeed_o to_o deceive_v the_o world_n and_o to_o persuade_v man_n to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n the_o monk_n propine_v the_o cup_n of_o fornication_n to_o all_o nation_n they_o persuade_v king_n to_o subject_v their_o crown_n unto_o the_o highpriest_n and_o they_o be_v the_o sower_n of_o his_o superstitious_a rite_n and_o other_o error_n as_o may_v be_v see_v at_o length_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n at_o trent_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o 4._o and_o 5._o session_n where_o the_o bishop_n and_o ruler_n seek_v to_o take_v these_o liberty_n from_o monk_n but_o the_o romish_a courtier_n will_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n and_o gallicia_n in_o the_o 4._o council_n at_o toledo_n do_v espy_v this_o hypocrisy_n and_o cap._n 52._o do_v ordain_v that_o bishop_n shall_v restrain_v all_o religious_a person_n so_o do_v the_o monk_n call_v themselves_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o religion_n in_o other_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o go_v from_o place_n to_o place_n and_o each_o bishop_n shall_v compel_v they_o within_o his_o diocie_n to_o return_v into_o some_o monastery_n or_o take_v they_o to_o a_o parish_n unless_o they_o be_v dismiss_v for_o age_n or_o sickness_n this_o act_n can_v not_o stand_v for_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n must_v go_v on_o so_o that_o just_o do_v i_o hooper_n bishop_n of_o gloucester_n and_o martyr_n a_o 1555._o call_v the_o monk_n the_o pale_a horse_n say_v this_o pale_a horse_n be_v the_o time_n wherein_o hypocrite_n and_o dissembler_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n under_o pretence_n of_o true_a religion_n they_o kill_v more_o soul_n with_o heresy_n and_o superstition_n then_o all_o the_o tyrant_n that_o ever_o be_v do_v kill_v body_n with_o fire_n sword_z or_o banishment_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o his_o name_n who_o sit_v upon_o the_o horse_n that_o be_v death_n for_o all_o soul_n who_o leave_v christ_n and_o trust_v to_o these_o hypocrite_n live_v unto_o the_o devil_n in_o everlasting_a pain_n these_o pretence_a and_o false_a hypocrite_n have_v stir_v the_o earthquake_n that_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n against_o christ_n church_n letter_n of_o saint_n and_o martyr_n print_v a_o 1564._o pag._n 116._o by_o their_o sermon_n they_o do_v commend_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n every_o where_o and_o boniface_n the_o v._o and_o then_o other_o pope_n give_v they_o so_o many_o prerogative_n that_o they_o who_o have_v the_o great_a desire_n of_o liberty_n become_v monk_n erasmus_n in_o vita_fw-la hieron_n yea_o and_o king_n forsake_v their_o sceptre_n betake_v they_o to_o a_o monkish_a life_n as_o bambas_n king_n of_o the_o goth_n in_o spain_n and_o some_o retain_v their_o crown_n profess_v themselves_o of_o the_o order_n of_o monk_n by_o dispensation_n with_o provision_n that_o they_o give_v revenue_n to_o one_o abbey_n or_o more_o and_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o their_o member_n the_o monk_n suffer_v no_o loss_n or_o in_o a_o word_n that_o monastery_n may_v be_v enrich_v at_o first_o out_o of_o the_o monastery_n as_o college_n be_v choose_v presbyter_n who_o be_v esteem_v of_o a_o high_a degree_n august_n epist_n 76._o ad_fw-la aurel._n and_o pelagius_n the_o i._o bishop_n of_o rome_n write_v to_o antonia_n and_o decia_n say_v i_o wish_v that_o those_o who_o be_v nourish_v by_o we_o in_o this_o habit_n and_o in_o monastery_n may_v when_o they_o shall_v
writer_n of_o the_o history_n say_v lib._n 2._o there_o be_v great_a contention_n concern_v the_o latin_a translation_n and_o in_o the_o end_n they_o do_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v approve_v as_o authentical_a yet_o so_o that_o they_o who_o be_v more_o diligent_a shall_v not_o be_v forbid_v to_o quench_v their_o thirst_n out_o of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a fountain_n and_o after_o that_o council_n two_o other_o edition_n be_v publish_v by_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o v._o and_o clemens_n the_o viii_o with_o infinite_a alteration_n as_o follow_v in_o the_o 16._o century_n 11._o the_o pope_n do_v endeavour_v to_o take_v liberty_n of_o marriage_n from_o the_o clergy_n oppose_v the_o single_a life_n of_o church_n man_n be_v oppose_v and_o where_o they_o can_v prevail_v adultery_n and_o murder_n of_o babe_n be_v multiply_v as_o be_v touch_v in_o sundry_a nation_n great_a opposition_n be_v make_v for_o arnulph_n bishop_n of_o metensis_fw-la be_v the_o father_n of_o anchises_n the_o father_n of_o pippin_n britain_n will_v not_o receive_v this_o bondage_n in_o crect_n john_n a_o priest_n have_v a_o wife_n and_o therefore_o be_v reprove_v by_o pope_n vitalian_n what_o may_v i_o speak_v of_o one_o greek_n the_o greek_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n marry_v until_o this_o day_n in_o the_o four_o council_n at_o toledo_n cap._n 43._o marriage_n be_v approve_v and_o fornication_n prohibit_v more_o of_o this_o hereafter_o 12._o divers_a nation_n than_o receive_v the_o faith_n the_o gothi_n and_o suevi_n in_o spain_n christ_n some_o nation_n hear_v of_o christ_n forsake_v arianism_n by_o authority_n of_o their_o king_n reccare_v ghent_n break_v down_o the_o altar_n of_o mercurius_n who_o they_o have_v serve_v and_o begin_v to_o serve_v the_o true_a god_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o amand_n a_o frenchman_n a_o 613._o who_o be_v exile_v for_o reprove_v king_n dagobert_n of_o luxury_n and_o venery_n other_o flandrian_o be_v convert_v by_o his_o country_n man_n aegidius_n a_o 649._o the_o sound_n of_o the_o word_n have_v be_v through_o the_o world_n but_o the_o nation_n persevere_v not_o and_o be_v instruct_v but_o in_o few_o person_n paganism_n continue_v and_o the_o barbarian_n disturb_v the_o realm_n do_v also_o disturb_v the_o estate_n of_o religion_n 13._o in_o that_o centurie_n live_v sundry_a divine_n although_o not_o equal_a to_o their_o forefather_n john_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n call_v the_o almond_n a_o 610._o who_o for_o man_n some_o worthy_a man_n his_o rare_a example_n of_o hospitality_n and_o bountifulness_n to_o the_o poor_a be_v no_o less_o worthy_a to_o have_v place_n among_o good_a man_n than_o he_o be_v follow_v of_o few_o he_o be_v wont_a at_o all_o occasion_n to_o propound_v unto_o the_o people_n question_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n because_o multitude_n of_o heresy_n be_v then_o on_o foot_n and_o he_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o propound_v their_o doubt_n unto_o he_o if_o any_o do_v presumptuous_o move_v curious_a question_n he_o can_v cunning_o turn_v to_o another_o more_o profitable_a when_o any_o of_o the_o unlearned_a move_v trivial_a doubt_n he_o accept_v they_o calm_o and_o command_v that_o thereafter_o such_o person_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o end_n other_o seeing_z such_o man_n check_v shall_v be_v the_o more_o wary_a in_o the_o day_n of_o boniface_n the_o iv_o john_n bishop_n of_o gerunden_n a_o spaniard_n be_v instruct_v at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o language_n and_o read_n of_o scripture_n thence_o he_o return_v into_o his_o country_n do_v with_o dexterity_n refute_v the_o heresy_n of_o arrius_n and_o therefore_o be_v exile_v to_o barchinona_n but_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o arrian_n king_n lemungild_n he_o return_v and_o write_v many_o book_n of_o the_o same_o country_n be_v europius_fw-la bishop_n of_o valentia_n worthy_a of_o remembrance_n for_o godliness_n of_o life_n and_o sincerity_n of_o faith_n then_o also_o live_v ildefonsus_n bishop_n of_o toledo_n who_o as_o another_o augustine_n be_v call_v the_o hammer_n of_o heretic_n france_n do_v never_o want_v famous_a witness_n of_o the_o gospel_n at_o that_o time_n be_v the_o forenamed_a arnulph_n bishop_n of_o metensis_fw-la projectus_fw-la a_o martyr_n in_o aquitania_n a_o 610._o eustathius_n abb._n luxovien_n the_o disciple_n of_o columban_n a_o 624._o modoald_v bishop_n of_o trever_n renald_n the_o successor_n of_o the_o abovenamed_a amand_n we_o have_v hear_v of_o serenus_n bishop_n of_o marsilia_n where_o succeed_v projectus_fw-la who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o agro_fw-la cameracen_n a_o 678._o eustasius_n a_o preacher_n in_o bavier_n a_o 640._o lambert_n bishop_n of_o tungri_n be_v put_v to_o death_n a_o 658._o because_o he_o rebuke_v pippin_n for_o marry_v another_o wife_n the_o first_o be_v yet_o alive_a dodo_n the_o brother_n of_o the_o second_o wife_n be_v the_o executioner_n and_o short_o thereafter_o die_v of_o vermin_n ulfranius_n bishop_n of_o senonen_n have_v be_v a_o diligent_a labourer_n in_o the_o lord_n harvest_n in_o frisia_n a_o 660._o leodagarius_fw-la bishop_n of_o augustodunen_n suffer_v death_n at_o the_o command_n of_o theoric_n king_n of_o france_n because_o he_o oft_o reprove_v he_o of_o tyranny_n victor_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n a_o 646._o writing_n to_o pope_n theodore_n retain_v the_o old_a title_n say_v unto_o the_o most_o bless_a and_o honourable_a lord_n his_o holy_a brother_n theodore_n pope_n the_o work_n of_o your_o most_o bless_a brotherhood_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n etc._n etc._n there_o he_o affirm_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n and_o honour_n 14._o isidorus_n bishop_n of_o hispala_n call_v the_o latter_a do_v write_v many_o book_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o history_n from_o adam_n until_o his_o own_o time_n 624._o hispalen_n isidor_n hispalen_n he_o have_v many_o error_n but_o in_o many_o thing_n be_v sound_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr summo_fw-la bono_fw-mi cap._n 28._o he_o say_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o on_o high_a mountain_n both_o the_o learned_a find_v sublimity_n of_o knowledge_n whereunto_o as_o heart_n they_o may_v lift_v up_o the_o step_n of_o their_o contemplation_n and_o the_o simple_a man_n as_o less_o wight_n may_v find_v mean_a thing_n for_o their_o capacity_n to_o which_o they_o may_v humble_o have_v refuge_n the_o holy_a scripture_n seem_v unto_o the_o babe_n of_o understanding_n to_o be_v base_a in_o word_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o history_n but_o it_o wade_v more_o deep_o with_o the_o more_o learned_a open_v unto_o they_o the_o mystery_n thereof_o and_o it_o remain_v common_a to_o the_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a lib._n 7._o etymolog_fw-la cap._n 9_o peter_n receive_v his_o name_n from_o the_o rock_n which_o be_v christ_n on_o who_o the_o church_n be_v build_v the_o rock_n have_v not_o the_o name_n from_o peter_n but_o peter_n from_o the_o rock_n therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n which_o thou_o have_v confess_v will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n for_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n upon_o which_o peter_n himself_o be_v build_v lib_fw-la 8._o cap._n 5._o he_o note_v it_o as_o a_o fault_n in_o the_o old_a catharist_n that_o they_o do_v glory_n in_o their_o merit_n and_o that_o they_o deny_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o penitent_a lib._n 6._o cap._n 19_o the_o sacrament_n be_v baptism_n and_o chrism_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n here_o he_o name_v but_o two_o because_o the_o custom_n be_v then_o to_o anoint_v they_o who_o be_v baptize_v de_fw-fr offic_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 18._o bread_n because_o it_o strengthen_v the_o body_n be_v therefore_o call_v christ_n body_n and_o wine_n because_o it_o work_v blood_n in_o the_o flesh_n therefore_o it_o have_v relation_n to_o christ_n blood_n these_o two_o be_v sensible_a but_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v change_v into_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n the_o papist_n now_o in_o our_o day_n will_v gather_v out_o of_o these_o word_n transubstantiation_n but_o hereafter_o god_n will_v it_o shall_v appear_v that_o neither_o word_n nor_o thing_n be_v think_v upon_o in_o 500_o year_n after_o that_o time_n and_o isidore_n say_v transeunt_fw-la in_o sacramentum_fw-la and_o the_o doctrine_n &_o fide_fw-la art_n 33._o say_v that_o marriage_n be_v evil_a or_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o fornication_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o meat_n be_v evil_a or_o the_o cause_n of_o evil_n unto_o the_o eater_n be_v not_o christian_n but_o proper_o manichean_a or_o encratitish_a 15._o agrestin_n be_v clark_n to_o king_n theodorick_n and_o then_o enter_v the_o abbey_n lexovien_n with_o all_o his_o wealth_n he_o become_v weary_v of_o the_o superstitious_a rite_n agrestin_n agrestin_n and_o leave_v the_o abbey_n then_o he_o go_v to_o aquileia_n which_o for_o that_o time_n be_v not_o under_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o romish_a pope_n and_o
it_o be_v call_v the_o daily_a prayer_n by_o the_o doctor_n and_o father_n ca._n 16._o the_o book_n of_o revelation_n shall_v be_v read_v yearly_o in_o the_o church_n between_o easter_n and_o whitsunday_n ca._n 18._o a_o pernicious_a custom_n shall_v not_o be_v keep_v contempt_n of_o ancient_a statute_n have_v perturb_v all_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n while_o some_o by_o ambition_n and_o other_o by_o gift_n do_v usurp_v priesthood_n and_o bishopric_n and_o some_o profane_a man_n and_o soldier_n unworthy_a of_o such_o honour_n have_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o holy_a order_n they_o shall_v be_v remove_v but_o lest_o great_a scandal_n arise_v in_o the_o church_n what_o have_v be_v do_v be_v pass_v it_o be_v expedient_a to_o prescribe_v who_o shall_v not_o hereafter_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o priesthood_n that_o be_v he_o who_o have_v be_v convict_v of_o any_o infamous_a crime_n who_o by_o public_a repentance_n have_v confess_v gross_a sin_n who_o have_v fall_v into_o heresy_n who_o have_v be_v baptize_v in_o heresy_n or_o be_v know_v to_o be_v rebaptise_v who_o have_v marry_v a_o second_o wife_n or_o widow_n or_o divorce_v or_o corrupt_a woman_n who_o have_v concubine_n or_o whore_n unknown_a man_n or_o young_a scholar_n who_o have_v be_v soldier_n or_o courtier_n who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o letter_n who_o be_v not_o 30._o year_n old_a who_o ascend_v not_o by_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o church_n who_o seek_v honour_n by_o ambition_n or_o gift_n who_o be_v choose_v by_o their_o predecessor_n who_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n of_o the_o city_n have_v not_o choose_v or_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a and_o consent_n of_o the_o comprovincial_a priest_n have_v not_o require_v whosoever_o be_v require_v unto_o the_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o be_v not_o find_v guilty_a in_o one_o of_o these_o and_o his_o life_n and_o doctrine_n be_v approve_v according_a to_o the_o synodal_n decree_v he_o shall_v be_v consecrate_v by_o all_o the_o comprovincial_a bishop_n at_o least_o by_o three_o upon_o a_o sabbath_n day_n and_o the_o rest_n send_v their_o letter_n of_o approbation_n and_o especial_o by_o the_o authority_n and_o presence_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a a_o comprovincial_a bishop_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o metropolitan_a shall_v choose_v he_o the_o metropolitan_a shall_v not_o be_v consecrate_v but_o in_o his_o own_o see_v when_o the_o comprovincial_o be_v assemble_v ca._n 24._o priest_n be_v command_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n diligent_o that_o all_o their_o do_n may_v serve_v for_o instruction_n to_o the_o people_n in_o knowledge_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a example_n of_o life_n ca._n 35._o every_o bishop_n shall_v visit_v his_o diocy_n once_o every_o year_n in_o proper_a person_n and_o if_o sickness_n or_o weighty_a business_n do_v hinder_v he_o then_o by_o the_o most_o grave_a priest_n ca._n 46._o at_o command_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o king_n sisenand_n the_o holy_a council_n ordain_v that_o all_o clark_n for_o the_o service_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v exempt_a from_o all_o charge_n and_o labour_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n ca._n 74._o so_o great_a be_v the_o falsehood_n of_o many_o nation_n as_o they_o report_v that_o they_o keep_v not_o their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n unto_o their_o king_n and_o in_o a_o word_n they_o feign_v the_o profession_n of_o a_o oath_n but_o retain_v in_o their_o mind_n the_o impiety_n of_o falsehood_n they_o swear_v unto_o their_o king_n and_o transgress_v against_o their_o oath_n nor_o fear_v they_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o perjurer_n what_o hope_n can_v such_o have_v when_o they_o war_n against_o their_o enemy_n what_o faithfulness_n can_v other_o nation_n expect_v in_o peace_n what_o covenant_n shall_v not_o be_v violate_v since_o they_o keep_v not_o their_o oath_n unto_o their_o own_o king_n if_o we_o will_v eschew_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o if_o we_o desire_v he_o to_o turn_v his_o severity_n into_o clemency_n let_v we_o keep_v religious_a duty_n and_o fear_v god_n and_o our_o promise_a fidelity_n to_o our_o prince_n let_v there_o be_v no_o ungodly_a subtlety_n of_o infidelity_n among_o we_o as_o among_o some_o nation_n let_v none_o of_o we_o presumptuous_o usurp_v the_o kingdom_n let_v none_o raise_v sedition_n among_o the_o subject_n let_v none_o attempt_v the_o murder_n of_o king_n but_o when_o the_o king_n be_v depart_v in_o peace_n let_v the_o noble_n of_o the_o realm_n with_o the_o priest_n in_o a_o common-councel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n appoint_v a_o successor_n that_o when_o the_o unity_n of_o concord_n be_v keep_v by_o we_o no_o dissension_n can_v arise_v by_o violence_n or_o ambition_n and_o whosoever_o among_o we_o or_o of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o spain_n by_o any_o conspiracy_n or_o design_n whatsoever_o shall_v violate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o promise_n that_o he_o have_v promise_v for_o the_o stand_n of_o his_o country_n and_o kingdom_n of_o goth_n or_o for_o safety_n of_o the_o king_n or_o attempt_v to_o murder_v the_o king_n or_o to_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o royal_a power_n or_o by_o presumptuous_a tyranny_n shall_v usurp_v the_o kingdom_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o angel_n and_o let_v he_o be_v debar_v from_o the_o holy_a church_n which_o he_o have_v defile_v with_o perjury_n and_o let_v he_o be_v estrange_v from_o the_o assembly_n of_o christian_n with_o all_o the_o complice_n of_o his_o impiety_n because_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v subject_a in_o the_o same_o punishment_n who_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o fault_n which_o we_o repeat_v say_v again_o whosoever_o among_o we_o etc._n etc._n 5._o about_o the_o year_n 616._o be_v a_o council_n at_o altisiodore_n or_o autricum_n ca._n 5._o altisiodore_n synod_n at_o altisiodore_n all_o vigil_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v keep_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n be_v forbid_v as_o divination_n ca._n 18._o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o baptize_v at_o any_o time_n except_o at_o easter_n unless_o it_o be_v such_o that_o be_v near_o unto_o death_n who_o be_v call_v grabbatarij_fw-la ca._n 21._o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o presbyter_n after_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o blessing_n to_o sleep_v in_o a_o bed_n by_o a_o presbyteress_n here_o they_o ordain_v not_o to_o put_v away_o the_o wife_n nor_o forbid_v they_o cohabitation_n but_o sleep_v together_o ca._n 40._o a_o presbyter_n shall_v not_o sing_v nor_o dance_v at_o a_o feast_n in_o this_o council_n 7._o abbot_n and_o 34_o presbyter_n have_v decisive_a vote_n and_o subscribe_v 6._o about_o the_o year_n 650._o be_v the_o viii_o council_n at_o toledo_n to_o the_o number_n toledo_n the_o viii_o synod_n at_o toledo_n of_o 52._o bishop_n where_o first_o be_v recite_v and_o approve_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n little_o differ_v from_o the_o nicene_n creed_n as_o teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n allow_v by_o the_o orthodox_n father_n and_o approve_v by_o the_o holy_a counsel_n here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o in_o the_o iv_o council_n at_o toledo_n that_o article_n be_v not_o omit_v in_o many_o of_o all_o these_o spanish_a counsel_n the_o sleep_a of_o presbyter_n with_o their_o wife_n be_v condemn_v as_o sinful_a and_o execrable_a but_o some_o will_v maintain_v their_o liberty_n and_o will_v not_o obey_v as_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o chapter_n of_o this_o council_n 7._o in_o the_o year_n 655._o be_v a_o council_n of_o 45._o bishop_n at_o cabella_n or_o cabilone_n in_o cabilone_n synod_n at_o cabilone_n burgundy_n ca._n 1._o the_o forenamed_a creed_n be_v approve_v ca._n 10._o when_o a_o bishop_n of_o any_o city_n die_v another_o shall_v be_v choose_v only_o by_o the_o clergy_n and_o indweller_n of_o the_o same_o province_n otherwise_o the_o election_n be_v nul_fw-fr ca._n 17._o if_o any_o shall_v move_v a_o tumult_n or_o draw_v a_o weapon_n in_o a_o church_n so_o give_v scandal_n let_v he_o be_v debar_v from_o the_o communion_n ca._n 18._o we_o not_o ordain_v a_o new_a thing_n but_o renew_v the_o old_a do_v ordain_v that_o no_o manner_n of_o husbandry-work_n be_v do_v on_o the_o lordsday_n ca._n 19_o many_o thing_n fall_v out_o that_o be_v light_o punish_v it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v very_o unseemly_a that_o on_o holy_a feast_n woman_n in_o tribe_n use_v to_o sing_v filthy_a song_n when_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v pray_v or_o hear_v prayer_n therefore_o priest_n shall_v abolish_v such_o thing_n and_o if_o such_o person_n continue_v in_o their_o wickedness_n let_v they_o be_v excommunicate_v 8._o about_o the_o year_n 673._o be_v a_o synod_n at_o hertford_n or_o herudford_n in_o england_n hertford_n synod_n at_o hertford_n where_o it_o be_v decree_v 1._o that_o easter_n shall_v be_v keep_v through_o the_o realm_n on_o the_o sunday_n the_o 14._o day_n of_o
shave_v and_o make_v a_o monk_n and_o aventin_n in_o annal._n say_v when_o volarad_n a_o bishop_n and_o burchard_n abbot_n of_o saint_n dionis_fw-la at_o paris_n be_v send_v to_o understand_v the_o pope_n judgement_n his_o answer_n be_v i_o find_v in_o the_o sacred_a story_n of_o divine_a scripture_n that_o the_o people_n fall_v away_o from_o their_o wretchless_n and_o lascivious_a king_n who_o despise_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n and_o create_v a_o sufficient_a man_n one_o of_o themselves_o king_n god_n himself_o allow_v their_o do_n all_o power_n and_o rule_n belong_v unto_o god_n prince_n be_v his_o minister_n in_o their_o kingdom_n and_o ruler_n be_v choose_v for_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v follow_v the_o will_n of_o god_n the_o chief_a ruler_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o not_o to_o do_v what_o they_o listen_v he_o be_v a_o true_a king_n that_o guide_v the_o people_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n according_a to_o the_o prescript_n and_o line_n of_o god_n law_n all_o that_o he_o have_v as_o power_n glory_n riches_n honour_n and_o dignity_n he_o receive_v of_o the_o people_n the_o people_n create_v their_o king_n and_o the_o people_n may_v when_o the_o cause_n so_o require_v forsake_v their_o king_n it_o be_v lawful_a therefore_o for_o the_o french_a and_o german_n to_o refuse_v this_o unkind_a monster_n and_o to_o choose_v one_o who_o may_v be_v able_a in_o war_n and_o peace_n by_o his_o wisdom_n to_o protect_v and_o keep_v in_o safety_n their_o wife_n child_n parent_n good_n and_o life_n so_o pope_n zachary_n give_v his_o advice_n and_o pretend_v not_o any_o interest_n into_o the_o matter_n then_o he_o write_v unto_o boniface_n bishop_n of_o mentz_n that_o he_o may_v anoint_v pippin_n king_n of_o france_n and_o declare_v all_o his_o subject_n free_a from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n unto_o their_o lazy_a sovereign_n and_o now_o the_o reader_n may_v judge_v what_o pippin_n do_v receive_v from_o pope_n zachary_n this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o many_o year_n and_o so_o end_v an._n 752._o here_o observe_v that_o pippin_n be_v anoint_v but_o anoint_v jew_n the_o custom_n of_o anoint_v king_n be_v late_o or_o borrow_v from_o the_o jew_n of_o king_n be_v not_o in_o custom_n among_o christian_n in_o the_o day_n of_o lactantius_n who_o in_o institut_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 7._o speak_v of_o christ_n name_n say_v it_o be_v command_v unto_o the_o jew_n to_o make_v a_o holy_a oil_n wherewith_o those_o be_v anoint_v who_o be_v call_v unto_o the_o priesthood_n or_o kingdom_n and_o now_o among_o the_o roman_n the_o robe_n of_o purpure_a be_v the_o sign_n of_o their_o royal_a assume_v power_n so_o unto_o they_o the_o anoint_v with_o oil_n give_v the_o name_n and_o royal_a power_n and_o augustine_n on_o psal_n 45._o say_v it_o be_v the_o custom_n only_o of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n to_o anoint_v king_n and_o priest_n whereby_o be_v teach_v that_o among_o none_o other_o but_o the_o jewish_a people_n be_v the_o king_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v bear_v anastasius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v anoint_v emperor_n leo_n the_o i._o and_o thereafter_o that_o come_v into_o custom_n to_o show_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v a_o true_a christian_a and_o free_a from_o heresy_n they_o want_v no_o colour_n for_o bring_v into_o the_o christian_a church_n jewish_n or_o heathenish_a rite_n 5._o john_n damascen_n who_o be_v call_v chrysoras_n for_o distinction_n from_o another_o damascen_n john_n damascen_n of_o that_o name_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 300._o have_v be_v among_o the_o saracen_n and_o for_o fear_n of_o death_n do_v make_v profession_n of_o mahumetism_n but_o be_v escape_v do_v write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o begin_v the_o first_o system_v of_o divinity_n among_o the_o greek_n as_o afterward_o pe._n lombard_n among_o the_o latin_n he_o be_v a_o maintainer_n of_o image_n but_o in_o many_o other_o thing_n be_v a_o adversary_n to_o the_o present_a doctrine_n of_o rome_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr orthod_n fide_fw-la cap._n 1._o he_o say_v all_o that_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n we_o embrace_v acknowledge_v and_o reverence_n seek_v no_o further_o god_n therefore_o be_v ignorant_a of_o nothing_o and_o provide_v whatsoever_o be_v profitable_a for_o we_o to_o know_v have_v reveal_v it_o but_o he_o have_v hide_v in_o silence_n those_o thing_n whereof_o we_o can_v not_o endure_v the_o weight_n therefore_o let_v we_o love_v these_o thing_n and_o abide_v in_o they_o neither_o shall_v we_o pass_v beyond_o the_o bound_n appoint_v by_o his_o eternal_a will_n not_o transgress_v the_o divine_a tradition_n any_o way_n lib_fw-la 3_o cap._n 17._o the_o lord_n flesh_n be_v enrich_v with_o divine_a efficacy_n because_o of_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n neither_o do_v it_o fall_v or_o have_v it_o exceed_v its_o proper_a nature_n nor_o its_o natural_a property_n and_o cap._n 18._o he_o say_v the_o communication_n of_o omnipotency_n unto_o christ-man_n or_o his_o manhood_n may_v be_v declare_v two_o way_n first_o that_o this_o man_n christ_n be_v almighty_a by_o communication_n of_o property_n next_o the_o proper_a work_n of_o god_n be_v give_v to_o the_o flesh_n as_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 18._o after_o he_o have_v at_o length_n recommend_v the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o reckon_v the_o book_n of_o the_o old-testament_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o then_o he_o say_v the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n and_o of_o jesus_n son_n of_o sirach_n be_v pleasant_a and_o good_a but_o be_v not_o number_v among_o the_o prophetical_a book_n nor_o be_v put_v into_o the_o ark._n and_o in_o cap._n 25._o he_o commend_v virginity_n and_o then_o he_o add_v this_o we_o say_v not_o derogate_a from_o marriage_n god_n forbid_v for_o we_o know_v that_o god_n bless_a marriage_n by_o his_o presence_n and_o it_o be_v say_v marriage_n be_v honourable_a among_o all_o man_n in_o cap._n 14._o he_o say_v by_o invocation_n and_o by_o work_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o water_n be_v supernatural_o change_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o papish_n make_v use_v of_o this_o testimony_n for_o their_o transubstantiation_n but_o there_o be_v also_o a_o supernatural_a change_n of_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n and_o yet_o no_o transubstantiation_n neither_o do_v the_o greek_n believe_v it_o to_o this_o day_n but_o only_o a_o mystical_a change_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o use_n and_o effect_n 6._o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n zachary_n to_o boniface_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o divers_a pope_n many_o in_o italy_n and_o stain_n do_v oppose_v the_o pope_n bishop_n and_o priest_n contemn_v the_o pretend_a apostolical_a authority_n and_o his_o excommunication_n in_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n adrian_n it_o appear_v that_o leo_n patriarch_n of_o ravenna_n withhold_v many_o thing_n from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o that_o he_o despise_v the_o judge_n who_o the_o pope_n send_v thither_o and_o that_o he_o open_v the_o letter_n that_o be_v send_v by_o some_o of_o his_o diocy_n unto_o the_o pope_n also_o regimbald_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o lombardy_n do_v allow_v their_o clergy_n to_o marry_v against_o the_o decree_n of_o rome_n exit_fw-la epist_n adrian_n ad_fw-la carol._n when_o maurice_n bishop_n of_o istria_n profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o require_v pension_n there_o unto_o he_o the_o people_n pull_v out_o his_o eye_n and_o say_v their_o land_n be_v the_o territory_n of_o charles_n and_o not_o of_o the_o pope_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 8._o paulin_n bishop_n of_o aquileia_n in_o his_o book_n against_o felix_n and_o eliphand_a bishop_n of_o uurgelita_n and_o t●le●o_n commend_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o condemn_v all_o opinion_n whatsoever_o that_o can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o they_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o rock_n christ_n and_o it_o may_v be_v shake_v by_o heretic_n but_o can_v be_v drown_v because_o it_o be_v strengthen_v by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v teacher_n and_o every_o christian_a shall_v fight_v against_o heretical_a opinion_n and_o refute_v they_o for_o a_o soldier_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v base_o afraid_a for_o the_o force_n of_o approach_a battle_n nor_o by_o stray_v seek_v the_o lurk_a hole_n of_o harmless_a escape_n but_o be_v gird_v with_o the_o weapon_n of_o their_o own_o warfare_n shall_v courageous_o pierce_v the_o heart_n of_o their_o enemy_n with_o spiritual_a dart_n out_o of_o the_o bow_n of_o the_o scripture_n 7._o aponius_n a_o french_a man_n then_o write_v several_a book_n in_o cant._n lib._n 1._o he_o say_v aponius_n aponius_n the_o lord_n have_v give_v his_o fiery_a word_n unto_o this_o world_n in_o the_o
elect_v that_o they_o may_v believe_v for_o the_o lord_n himself_o declare_v this_o when_o he_o say_v you_o have_v not_o choose_v i_o but_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o for_o if_o they_o be_v therefore_o choose_v because_o they_o do_v believe_v they_o do_v first_o choose_v he_o by_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o they_o may_v deserve_v to_o be_v choose_v but_o he_o take_v this_o away_o altogether_o who_o say_v you_o have_v not_o choose_v i_o but_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o and_o certain_o they_o do_v choose_v he_o when_o they_o do_v believe_v in_o he_o therefore_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n say_v he_o you_o have_v not_o choose_v i_o but_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o except_o because_o they_o do_v not_o choose_v that_o he_o shall_v choose_v they_o but_o he_o do_v choose_v they_o that_o they_o may_v choose_v he_o because_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n do_v prevene_v they_o with_o grace_n and_o not_o according_a to_o debt_n this_o be_v the_o immovable_a truth_n of_o predestination_n and_o grace_n in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o add_v god_n have_v predestinate_v we_o ere_o we_o be_v he_o call_v we_o when_o we_o be_v averse_a he_o justify_v we_o when_o we_o be_v sinner_n he_o glorify_v we_o when_o we_o be_v mortal_a if_o god_n be_v thus_o with_o we_o who_o shall_v be_v against_o we_o he_o who_o will_v be_v against_o they_o who_o be_v predestinate_v by_o god_n against_o they_o who_o be_v call_v justify_v and_o glorify_v let_v he_o prepare_v himself_o to_o fight_v against_o god_n if_o he_o can_v for_o when_o we_o hear_v if_o god_n be_v with_o we_o who_o can_v be_v against_o we_o none_o can_v harm_v we_o but_o he_o who_o overcome_v god_n beda_n be_v large_a on_o this_o purpose_n there_o out_o of_o augustine_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o say_v on_o luk._n 22._o he_o break_v the_o bread_n which_o he_o give_v that_o he_o may_v show_v that_o the_o break_n of_o his_o body_n be_v not_o without_o his_o own_o accord_n when_o he_o say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o the_o apostle_n expound_v it_o when_o he_o say_v how_o oft_o you_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v because_o bread_n strengthen_v flesh_n and_o wine_n work_v blood_n in_o the_o flesh_n the_o one_o be_v refer_v unto_o his_o body_n mystical_o and_o the_o other_o unto_o his_o blood_n and_o on_o 1_o cor._n 10._o at_o the_o word_n the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n which_o we_o bless_v he_o say_v what_o you_o see_v be_v bread_n and_o a_o cup_n which_o even_o your_o eye_n declare_v unto_o you_o but_o what_o faith_n require_v to_o be_v teach_v the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o cup_n his_o blood_n this_o be_v speak_v brief_o which_o possible_o may_v suffice_v faith_n but_o faith_n require_v instruction_n he_o take_v up_o his_o body_n into_o the_o heaven_n whence_o he_o will_v come_v again_o to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a there_o he_o be_v now_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n how_o then_o be_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n and_o the_o cup_n or_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o cup_n how_o be_v it_o his_o blood_n brethren_n these_o thing_n be_v sacrament_n for_o in_o they_o one_o thing_n be_v see_v and_o another_o thing_n be_v understand_v etc._n etc._n when_o he_o say_v the_o lord_n break_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o bread_n strengthen_v flesh_n and_o it_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o body_n mystical_o and_o even_o our_o eye_n declare_v it_o to_o be_v bread_n etc._n etc._n certain_o he_o think_v not_o upon_o transubstantiation_n beda_n do_v translate_v the_o gospel_n of_o john_n the_o psalm_n and_o some_o other_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o the_o saxon_n language_n and_o he_o write_v a_o epistle_n unto_o ecbert_n bishop_n of_o lindsfarn_n wherein_o he_o admonish_v he_o of_o negligence_n in_o his_o call_n and_o exhort_v he_o to_o translate_v some_o book_n of_o scripture_n into_o the_o saxon_a language_n that_o people_n may_v read_v they_o he_o tell_v he_o he_o ought_v to_o admonish_v the_o king_n and_o correct_v false_a monk_n and_o the_o bvilder_n of_o monastery_n if_o they_o respect_v their_o own_o ease_n more_o than_o solid_a virtue_n ecbert_n return_v he_o answer_v thank_v he_o for_o his_o christian_a admonition_n and_o thereafter_o do_v translate_v some_o book_n of_o the_o bible_n into_o the_o vulgar_a language_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o book_n of_o will._n butler_n against_o the_o common_a translation_n in_o hist_o angl._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o he_o testify_v that_o at_o that_o time_n the_o island_n of_o britan_n do_v with_o five_o several_a language_n confess_v one_o and_o the_o same_o knowledge_n of_o the_o high_a truth_n and_o of_o true_a sublimity_n to_o wit_n the_o english_a britan_n scot_n picht_n and_o latin_n which_o last_o by_o meditation_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v become_v common_a unto_o they_o all_o here_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o four_o nation_n in_o the_o island_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o nevertheless_o he_o do_v observe_v and_o deplore_v the_o wax_a corruption_n of_o the_o church_n for_o in_o that_o epistle_n to_o ecbert_n he_o do_v not_o approve_v the_o specious_a and_o spacious_a building_n of_o monastery_n and_o in_o samu._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 2._o he_o say_v let_v the_o reader_n behold_v with_o tear_n a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o tear_n how_o far_o the_o church_n slide_v daily_o into_o a_o worse_a or_o to_o speak_v moderate_o unto_o a_o weak_a estate_n he_o do_v write_v many_o book_n as_o io._n bale_n in_o cent._n 2._o testify_v he_o live_v 72_o year_n and_o die_v an._n 734._o 2._o in_o the_o year_n 724._o jua_fw-la king_n of_o the_o westsaxons_a be_v persuade_v by_o his_o penny_n peter_n penny_n wife_n ethelburga_n to_o go_v unto_o rome_n in_o a_o monkish_a habit_n and_o first_o do_v grant_v that_o a_o penny_n shall_v be_v pay_v unto_o the_o pope_n out_o of_o every_o fire-house_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v call_v peter_n penny_n and_o be_v ever_o almost_o pay_v until_o the_o year_n 1533_o when_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o shake_v off_o the_o pope_n ethelbert_n king_n of_o the_o east-saxons_a go_v to_o marry_v the_o daughter_n of_o offa_n king_n of_o merceland_n and_o offa_n do_v perfidious_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v murder_v thereafter_o his_o pride_n be_v turn_v into_o so_o great_a repentance_n that_o he_o give_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o all_o that_o he_o have_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o several_a land_n to_o the_o church_n of_o hereford_n and_o then_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n and_o give_v unto_o the_o pope_n a_o yearly_a penny_n as_o jua_fw-la have_v do_v an._n 793._o henry_n spelman_n in_o council_n report_v out_o of_o a_o book_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la offae_n pag._n 171._o this_o penny_n be_v give_v not_o as_o a_o tribute_n unto_o saint_n peter_n but_o as_o a_o alm_n for_o the_o help_n of_o a_o english_a college_n at_o rome_n and_o it_o be_v call_v peter_n penny_n because_o it_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v pay_v on_o peter_n day_n yet_o certain_o thereafter_o it_o be_v call_v peter_n tribute_n 3._o about_o the_o year_n 786._o charles_n the_o great_a king_n of_o france_n make_v a_o league_n scotland_n a_o league_n between_o france_n and_o scotland_n with_o archaius_n king_n of_o scot_n which_o have_v continue_v inviolate_a until_o our_o time_n the_o saxon_n and_o other_o have_v spoil_v off_o france_n by_o incursion_n and_o charles_n do_v seek_v to_o adorn_v his_o kingdom_n with_o letter_n as_o well_o as_o arm_n therefore_o he_o seek_v the_o favour_n of_o the_o scot_n and_o do_v entreat_v king_n archaius_n to_o send_v unto_o he_o professor_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a language_n and_o of_o other_o learning_n for_o his_o university_n of_o paris_n among_o who_o archaius_n do_v send_v albinus_n or_o alcwine_n john_n meilrosius_n so_o name_v from_o the_o abbey_n melrose_n claudius_n clemens_n antoninus_n florent_fw-la reckon_v they_o among_o heretic_n who_o follow_v the_o greek_a church_n because_o they_o do_v oppose_v the_o romish_a rite_n john_n meilrosius_n become_v abbot_n of_o the_o augustinian_n at_o ticino_n and_o claudius_n be_v bishop_n of_o altisiodore_n or_o auxerre_n they_o both_o write_v several_a work_n as_o io._n bale_n show_v in_o cent._n 14._o 4._o we_o have_v mention_v boniface_n bishop_n of_o mentz_n he_o be_v a_o english_a winefrid_n boniface_n alias_o winefrid_n man_n and_o call_v winefrid_n he_o have_v bold_o reprove_v ethelbald_a king_n of_o merceland_n for_o adultery_n and_o tyranny_n therefore_o the_o king_n seek_v his_o life_n he_o flee_v unto_o rome_n where_o pope_n gregory_n the_o ii_o do_v regard_v he_o for_o his_o liberty_n and_o send_v he_o into_o germany_n for_o conversion_n of_o the_o saxon_n then_o of_o a_o
together_o to_o fight_v for_o life_n and_o land_n and_o kill_v he_o an._n 812._o zonar_n and_o his_o son_n stauratius_n be_v wound_v in_o the_o fight_n and_o escape_v into_o adrianople_n where_o he_o be_v declare_v emperor_n but_o after_o three_o month_n michael_n rangabis_n his_o brother_n in-law_n shut_v he_o into_o a_o monastery_n then_o be_v mutual_a ambassador_n betwixt_o the_o two_o emperor_n and_o a_o perpetual_a peace_n be_v conclude_v an._n 813._o as_o be_v touch_v in_o century_n 8._o in_o amalarius_n all_o these_o particular_n show_v evident_o that_o the_o power_n of_o transfer_v the_o empire_n do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o see_v now_o we_o have_v emperor_n near_o we_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o this_o history_n so_o that_o some_o mention_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o eastern_a empire_n 2._o charles_n the_o great_a be_v crown_v emperor_n an._n 800._o in_o the_o 33._o religion_n charles_n the_o great_a have_v care_n of_o religion_n year_n of_o his_o reign_n and_o the_o 58_o year_n of_o his_o age_n he_o do_v fight_v many_o battle_n and_o be_v always_o victorious_a he_o have_v war_n with_o the_o heathenish_a saxon_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 30_o year_n he_o do_v oft_o time_n overcome_v they_o and_o grant_v they_o liberty_n upon_o condition_n they_o will_v embrace_v the_o christian_a faith_n but_o on_o every_o occasion_n their_o duke_n wedekind_n cut_v off_o both_o loyalty_n and_o christianity_n at_o several_a time_n when_o charles_n have_v obtain_v a_o victory_n he_o erect_v a_o new_a bishopric_n he_o found_v seven_o bishop-city_n in_o that_o province_n give_v they_o princely_a power_n because_o he_o do_v judge_v that_o the_o fierce_a people_n may_v be_v tame_v by_o religion_n rather_o than_o by_o arm_n these_o be_v breme_n verda_n minda_fw-mi padeburn_n osnaburg_n hildesem_n halberstad_n crantz_n in_o saxon._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 23._o and_o in_o cap._n 22._o he_o say_v although_o charles_n give_v unto_o the_o high-priest_n power_n of_o govern_v yet_o the_o noble_n do_v not_o altogether_o lose_v their_o administration_n whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o when_o the_o war_n be_v end_v the_o secular_a power_n beyond_o visurg_n or_o the_o river_n veser_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o they_o all_o to_o belong_v unto_o he_o at_o last_o because_o they_o have_v revolt_v he_o remove_v ten_o thousand_o of_o they_o with_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n into_o brabant_n and_o flanders_n and_o set_v some_o french_a into_o that_o province_n and_o leave_v his_o son_n charles_n there_o with_o a_o army_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o obedience_n charles_n understand_v that_o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v much_o corrupt_v amend_v he_o cause_v the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n to_o be_v amend_v through_o the_o negligence_n of_o writer_n and_o give_v it_o in_o charge_n unto_o alcwin_n to_o amend_v the_o translation_n who_o do_v correct_v both_o the_o old_a and_o new-testament_n so_o do_v baron_n tom_fw-mi 9_o ad_fw-la an._n 908._o testify_v as_o also_o that_o he_o have_v a_o ancient_a copy_n in_o biblioth_n valitella_fw-mi carrying_z alcwin_n name_n and_o alcwin_n in_o his_o epistle_n before_o his_o six_o book_n on_o john_n speak_v of_o that_o his_o work_n at_o the_o command_n of_o the_o king_n he_o labour_v much_o for_o conversion_n of_o the_o pagan_n in_o germany_n and_o erect_v public_a school_n at_o paris_n ticine_n and_o osnaburg_n and_o furnish_v they_o with_o store_n of_o book_n he_o receive_v gift_n from_o the_o calipha_n of_o egypt_n his_o son_n pippin_n and_o charles_n die_v before_o he_o in_o the_o year_n 813._o when_o he_o be_v grow_v unable_a to_o govern_v he_o send_v for_o his_o son_n lewes_n and_o for_o bernard_n son_n of_o pippin_n and_o in_o presence_n of_o his_o peer_n say_v unto_o lewes_n come_v lewes_n and_o with_o joy_n put_v this_o crown_n upon_o thy_o head_n not_o for_o ornament_n of_o dignity_n but_o for_o safety_n of_o our_o kingdom_n and_o christian-commonwealth_n and_o henceforth_o govern_v thou_o the_o empire_n with_o happy_a success_n and_o the_o peer_n do_v swear_v fidelity_n unto_o he_o nor_o do_v lewes_n look_v unto_o the_o pope_n for_o coronation_n or_o anoint_v until_o pope_n stephen_n flee_v for_o refuge_n unto_o he_o as_o follow_v and_o then_o he_o be_v crown_v again_o at_o aken_n charles_n die_v in_o february_n an._n 814._o he_o begin_v a_o grammar_n of_o the_o german_a language_n but_o end_v it_o not_o he_o change_v the_o name_n of_o the_o wind_n and_o month_n from_o the_o heathenish_a manner_n he_o write_v many_o book_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o alcwin_n before_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la officiis_n he_o faith_n his_o testimony_n in_o some_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n say_v when_o christ_n be_v at_o supper_n with_o his_o disciple_n he_o break_v the_o bread_n and_o give_v the_o cup_n to_o they_o in_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o leave_v a_o great_a sacrament_n which_o be_v profitable_a unto_o we_o lib._n 1._o cap._n 15._o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o mediator_n be_v above_o the_o legal_a and_o evangelical_n precept_n through_o which_o mercy_n we_o be_v save_v not_o by_o our_o work_n which_o we_o have_v do_v nor_o by_o our_o willing_a or_o run_v but_o by_o his_o mercy_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 25._o the_o miracle_n which_o they_o say_v have_v appear_v in_o image_n if_o they_o do_v not_o appear_v true_o as_o no_o authentical_a miracle_n of_o miracle_n history_n show_v be_v but_o lie_v if_o by_o some_o imaginary_a overshadow_v they_o do_v appear_v to_o deceive_v man_n mind_n it_o be_v most_o dangerous_a lest_o that_o old_a enemy_n by_o his_o subtle_a art_n by_o show_n of_o wonder_n persuade_v deceitful_o to_o do_v unlawful_a thing_n but_o if_o these_o thing_n do_v very_o appear_v which_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o certain_a warrant_n we_o shall_v understand_v that_o when_o many_o and_o wondrous_a thing_n be_v do_v at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n by_o some_o creature_n or_o in_o whatsoever_o creature_n they_o be_v do_v yet_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v by_o which_o or_o in_o which_o these_o wonder_n be_v make_v because_o the_o almighty_a god_n who_o show_v many_o sign_n unto_o man_n by_o visible_a and_o palpable_a thing_n to_o mollify_v the_o hardness_n of_o man_n heart_n by_o these_o visible_a thing_n do_v not_o work_v these_o sign_n to_o confirm_v the_o worship_n of_o any_o creature_n for_o he_o have_v command_v to_o worship_n and_o adore_v he_o alone_o because_o god_n speak_v out_o of_o a_o bush_n unto_o moses_n shall_v the_o bush_n therefore_o be_v worship_v because_o a_o woman_n be_v heal_v by_o touch_v the_o hem_n of_o christ_n garment_n shall_v hem_n therefore_o be_v worship_v lib._n 4._o cap._n 2._o the_o holy_a and_o catholic_n church_n profess_v to_o serve_v god_n not_o by_o image_n nor_o by_o man_n nor_o aetheral_a power_n but_o by_o christ_n our_o lord_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 8._o charles_n make_v many_o law_n and_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n constitution_n his_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n which_o ansegisus_fw-la or_o angisus_fw-la abbot_n of_o lobien_n and_o then_o archbishop_n of_o senonen_n gather_v together_o with_o the_o constitution_n of_o lewes_n and_o divide_v they_o into_o seven_o book_n sinderus_n testify_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o abbey_n of_o saint_n gallus_n and_o be_v print_v late_o at_o paris_n in_o the_o preface_n he_o say_v he_o have_v appoint_v these_o constitution_n with_o advice_n of_o his_o priest_n and_o counsellor_n and_o that_o he_o have_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o king_n josias_n who_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v the_o kingdom_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o unto_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n lib._n 1._o he_o command_v to_o try_v the_o learning_n and_o conversation_n of_o intrantes_fw-la he_o do_v forbid_v private_a mass_n and_o appeal_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n but_o indirect_o ca._n 10._o he_o forbid_v confusion_n of_o diocy_n or_o that_o no_o bishop_n shall_v meddle_v with_o any_o parish_n of_o another_o diocy_n he_o forbid_v any_o book_n to_o be_v read_v public_o but_o what_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o council_n at_o chalcedon_n cap_n 20._o and_o cap._n 42._o he_o forbid_v to_o worship_v saint_n cap._n 82._o he_o command_v that_o bishop_n suffer_v not_o the_o priest_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n other_o thing_n than_o be_v contain_v in_o or_o according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 3._o although_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n may_v seem_v to_o stand_v in_o our_o person_n yet_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n and_o ordinance_n of_o man_n it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v so_o divide_v that_o every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o his_o own_o place_n and_o order_n have_v his_o own_o place_n and_o ministry_n hence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o i_o shall_v admonish_v you_o all_o
leave_n then_o concern_v his_o curse_n against_o the_o king_n after_o he_o have_v bitter_o expostulate_v for_o his_o menace_v and_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v send_v his_o letter_n unto_o the_o peer_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o have_v read_v they_o open_o in_o a_o assembly_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n and_o lorain_n at_o atiniac_a and_o have_v show_v his_o bull_n unto_o lewis_n king_n of_o germany_n whereby_o he_o be_v command_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o accurse_v they_o all_o who_o intermeddle_v with_o the_o kingdom_n of_o lorain_n he_o say_v i_o have_v hear_v that_o the_o like_a letter_n as_o have_v be_v direct_v to_o our_o lord_n charles_n and_o to_o the_o peer_n and_o bishop_n of_o his_o kingdom_n have_v be_v also_o send_v unto_o my_o lord_n lewis_n the_o glorious_a king_n and_o to_o the_o bishop_n and_o nobility_n of_o his_o kingdom_n ....._o then_o he_o give_v he_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o have_v hear_v it_o report_v by_o many_o that_o the_o two_o king_n have_v agree_v to_o divide_v the_o kingdom_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o do_v sedition_n shall_v kindle_v among_o the_o people_n wherefore_o since_o he_o see_v that_o either_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v contemn_v or_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o king_n be_v violate_v whence_o may_v arise_v fear_n of_o war_n he_o think_v it_o more_o expedient_a to_o omit_v so_o imperious_a command_n and_o surcease_v altogether_o from_o attempt_v any_o thing_n therein_o neither_o be_v it_o my_o duty_n say_v he_o to_o debar_v any_o man_n from_o the_o communion_n except_o one_o who_o have_v willing_o confess_v his_o fault_n or_o who_o be_v convict_v in_o judgement_n unless_o i_o will_v contemn_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o augustin_n gelasius_n boniface_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o the_o pope_n have_v accuse_v he_o that_o by_o silence_n and_o cessation_n he_o may_v seem_v not_o partner_n but_o author_n of_o the_o usurpation_n he_o bid_v he_o remember_v what_o be_v write_v the_o cause_n which_o i_o know_v not_o i_o fearch_v diligent_o and_o that_o god_n as_o be_v mark_v by_o gregory_n to_o who_o eye_n all_o thing_n be_v open_a say_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o sodomite_n i_o will_v go_v down_o and_o see_v whereby_o we_o shall_v learn_v to_o try_v and_o see_v the_o evil_a before_o we_o believe_v it_o and_o not_o punish_v till_o it_o be_v notorious_o know_v whereas_o he_o will_v have_v he_o abstain_v from_o the_o company_n of_o the_o king_n and_o not_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n it_o seem_v very_o hard_o say_v he_o since_o very_o many_o good_a man_n both_o of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o secular_a sort_n who_o occasional_o have_v come_v to_o rheims_n have_v open_o profess_v that_o they_o have_v never_o hear_v the_o like_a practice_n from_o any_o of_o his_o predecessor_n although_o in_o their_o own_o time_n they_o have_v see_v sedition_n and_o war_n not_o among_o king_n who_o be_v unite_v by_o oath_n and_o league_n but_o also_o among_o brethren_n yea_o between_o father_n and_o child_n and_o therefore_o he_o acknowledge_v this_o his_o contempt_n to_o be_v for_o his_o other_o sin_n since_o in_o this_o he_o have_v deal_v love_o with_o his_o fellow-brethren_n of_o who_o some_o have_v invite_v king_n charles_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o lorain_n moreover_o that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n affirm_v plain_o that_o kingdom_n be_v not_o conquer_v by_o curse_n of_o priest_n or_o bishop_n and_o that_o they_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n kingdom_n appertain_v unto_o god_n by_o who_o king_n do_v reign_v and_o he_o give_v they_o to_o who_o he_o will_v wherefore_o since_o the_o highpriest_n can_v be_v both_o a_o king_n and_o a_o bishop_n he_o shall_v leave_v the_o care_n of_o distribute_v kingdom_n which_o as_o his_o predecessor_n do_v not_o attempt_v against_o the_o schismatical_a nor_o heretical_a nor_o tyrannous_a emperor_n in_o their_o time_n so_o neither_o can_v they_o now_o bear_v it_o who_o know_v it_o to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o shall_v strive_v even_o to_o death_n for_o liberty_n and_o inheritance_n neither_o be_v they_o ignorant_a if_o a_o bishop_n excommunicate_v a_o christian_a without_o reason_n that_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v may_v be_v take_v from_o he_o but_o eternal_a life_n can_v be_v take_v from_o no_o man_n unless_o his_o own_o sin_n do_v demerit_n neither_o can_v any_o man_n be_v spoil_v of_o the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_a for_o take_v or_o conquer_a a_o earthly_a kingdom_n or_o can_v he_o be_v rank_v with_o the_o devil_n who_o christ_n come_v to_o redeem_v with_o his_o blood_n from_o the_o devil_n power_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v peace_n let_v he_o so_o seek_v it_o that_o he_o move_v no_o strife_n for_o the_o people_n think_v not_o that_o they_o can_v come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n except_o they_o embrace_v such_o a_o earthly_a king_n as_o the_o pope_n recommend_v as_o for_o the_o oath_n say_v he_o and_o falsehood_n and_o tyranny_n whereof_o you_o write_v the_o peer_n of_o the_o nation_n say_v unto_o we_o that_o you_o command_v not_o such_o thing_n as_o concern_v your_o authority_n yea_o they_o have_v not_o spare_v from_o menacing_n against_o you_o which_o for_o the_o present_a i_o will_v not_o repeat_v and_o i_o know_v as_o they_o threaten_v with_o deliberation_n so_o if_o god_n suffer_v they_o without_o retreat_v they_o will_v show_v it_o indeed_o and_o i_o know_v by_o experience_n that_o without_o regard_n of_o admonition_n or_o sword_n of_o man_n tongue_n unless_o some_o other_o stay_v arise_v our_o king_n and_o nobility_n of_o this_o realm_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o do_v according_o to_o their_o power_n and_o follow_v forth_o what_o they_o have_v begin_v he_o conclude_v that_o bishop_n and_o himself_o especial_o shall_v take_v heed_n of_o their_o behaviour_n towards_o the_o king_n since_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n that_o all_o soul_n be_v subject_a unto_o superior_a power_n and_o with_o these_o letter_n in_o the_o name_n of_o hincmar_n be_v other_o letter_n write_v by_o common_a advice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n be_v assemble_v at_o rheims_n and_o send_v unto_o pope_n adrian_n who_o die_v in_o the_o five_o year_n of_o his_o pride_n and_o so_o that_o strife_n cease_v ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n ex_fw-la aimoin_n lib._n 5._o and_o out_o of_o other_o baronius_n in_o annal._n ad_fw-la an._n 870._o §_o 38._o say_v hincmar_n do_v forge_v many_o excuse_n and_o by_o shift_v do_v escape_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v till_o pope_n adrian_n die_v 11._o john_n the_o ix_o succeed_v an._n 872_o as_o onuphrius_n say_v who_o reckon_v emperor_n the_o pope_n climb_v above_o the_o emperor_n not_o the_o eight_o year_n between_o nicolaus_n and_o adrian_n but_o other_o account_v his_o succession_n in_o the_o year_n 876._o he_o happen_v on_o the_o fit_a occasion_n of_o ambition_n among_o they_o all_o for_o after_o his_o inauguration_n begin_v the_o contention_n between_o charles_n of_o france_n and_o charles_n of_o germany_n for_o the_o empire_n the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v always_o aim_v at_o the_o kingdom_n of_o italy_n and_o promise_v unto_o pope_n john_n rich_a reward_n if_o he_o attain_v unto_o the_o empire_n he_o will_v defend_v the_o church_n from_o all_o injury_n and_o whole_o quit_v the_o territory_n of_o rome_n john_n do_v fear_v that_o the_o other_o will_v take_v his_o manure_n in_o italy_n and_o therefore_o desirous_a the_o emperor_n be_v at_o a_o distance_n rather_o than_o to_o sit_v in_o his_o eye_n he_o invite_v the_o king_n of_o france_n to_o come_v unto_o rome_n and_o incontinent_o salute_v he_o augustus_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n say_v sigonius_n and_o after_o he_o ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n the_o title_n imperator_n augustus_n become_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o highpriest_n whole_o and_o the_o year_n of_o their_o empire_n be_v reckon_v from_o their_o consecration_n by_o the_o pope_n continuator_fw-la eutropii_n say_v more_o plain_o charles_n the_o bald_a come_v to_o rome_n make_v covenant_n with_o the_o roman_n and_o grant_v unto_o they_o the_o right_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o revenue_n out_o of_o three_o monastery_n that_o be_v out_o of_o saint_n salvator_n saint_n mary_n in_o sabinis_fw-la and_o saint_n andrew_n on_o mount_n soracte_n and_o the_o imperial_a patrimony_n out_o of_o many_o other_o monastery_n he_o give_v they_o also_o the_o province_n of_o samnio_n and_o calabria_n with_o all_o the_o city_n of_o benevento_n and_o the_o dukedom_n of_o spoleto_n and_o two_o city_n of_o tuscia_n arisium_fw-la and_o clusium_n which_o do_v belong_v unto_o the_o duke_n so_o that_o he_o who_o before_o be_v above_o the_o roman_n in_o royality_n seem_v now_o inferior_a unto_o they_o he_o
he_o leave_v other_o in_o their_o wickedness_n and_o have_v condemn_v they_o unto_o everlasting_a death_n in_o the_o preface_n before_o 3_o reg._n in_o all_o thing_n we_o have_v need_n of_o aid_n from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o 4_o reg._n cap._n 19_o whosoever_o by_o true_a faith_n touch_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o true_o lay_v hope_n on_o he_o shall_v without_o doubt_n be_v partaker_n of_o his_o resurrection_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 10._o 8._o raban_n magnentius_n otherwise_o surname_v maurus_n be_v famous_a in_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n for_o poesy_n rhetoric_n astronomy_n other_o philosophy_n and_o theology_n unto_o who_o neither_o germany_n nor_o italy_n bring_v forth_o a_o equal_a say_v trithemius_n he_o become_v abbot_n of_o fulda_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o there_o he_o write_v commentary_n on_o all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o bible_n his_o monk_n be_v offend_v that_o he_o do_v so_o study_v the_o scripture_n and_o do_v not_o attend_v their_o revenue_n as_o trithem_n write_v therefore_o after_o 24_o year_n he_o give_v place_n to_o their_o anger_n and_o leave_v the_o abbey_n but_o they_o beseech_v he_o to_o return_v and_o he_o will_v not_o but_o do_v abide_v with_o the_o emperor_n lewis_n until_o otgar_n bishop_n of_o mentz_n die_v and_o raban_n succeed_v tho._n walden_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n martin_n the_o v._o reckon_v he_o and_o herebald_a or_o reginbald_a bishop_n of_o altisiodor_n among_o heretic_n because_o they_o favour_v bertram_n out_o of_o some_o of_o his_o work_n i_o have_v pick_v out_o these_o passage_n in_o eccles_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 7_o he_o say_v in_o meditate_v and_o read_v scripture_n the_o perfection_n of_o scripture_n the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o shall_v be_v wary_a neither_o to_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v nor_o take_v away_o from_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v comprehend_v by_o the_o author_n of_o divine_a scripture_n in_o those_o book_n but_o we_o shall_v thing_n of_o they_o with_o the_o high_a veneration_n and_o with_o all_o our_o strength_n fulfil_v the_o commandment_n thereof_o ibid._n cap._n 1_o man_n can_v now_o be_v save_v no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v our_o redeemer_n ibid._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 5_o the_o foundation_n foundation_n a_o sure_a foundation_n which_o the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v lay_v be_v one_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n upon_o this_o foundation_n both_o firm_a and_o stable_a and_o strong_a in_o itself_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n build_v in_o jer._n lib._n 18._o cap._n 2._o lest_o they_o will_v say_v our_o father_n be_v merit_n against_o merit_n accept_v for_o merit_n and_o therefore_o do_v they_o receive_v great_a thing_n from_o god_n he_o adjoin_v this_o be_v not_o for_o their_o merit_n but_o because_o it_o so_o please_v god_n who_o free_a gift_n it_o be_v whatsoever_o he_o bestow_v de_fw-fr modo_fw-la satisfact_n cap._n 2._o &_o 17._o whatsoever_o one_o remember_v that_o he_o have_v do_v wicked_o let_v he_o declare_v it_o confession_n confession_n unto_o the_o priest_n by_o confession_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v ashamed_a to_o reveal_v thy_o sin_n before_o man_n cease_v not_o with_o continual_a supplication_n to_o confess_v they_o unto_o he_o from_o who_o they_o can_v be_v hide_v and_o say_v against_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v he_o use_v to_o heal_v not_o publish_v thy_o shame_n and_o to_o forgive_v sin_n without_o upbraid_v de_fw-fr eucharist_n cap._n 24._o behold_v what_o these_o two_o sacrament_n do_v by_o sacrament_n two_o sacrament_n baptism_n we_o be_v regenerate_v in_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n regeneration_n be_v prove_v to_o continue_v not_o only_o by_o faith_n but_o by_o unity_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n here_o he_o speak_v but_o of_o two_o sacrament_n and_o so_o he_o call_v they_o express_o but_o de_fw-la institut_fw-la cleric_a lib._n 1._o cap._n 31._o one_o may_v think_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o more_o sacrament_n for_o he_o say_v because_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o more_o sacrament_n baptism_n and_o chrism_n it_o remain_v that_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o other_o two_o that_o be_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o when_o he_o call_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n two_o sacrament_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o call_v the_o two_o element_n two_o sacrament_n and_o that_o be_v improper_o and_o in_o cap._n 28._o of_o the_o forename_a book_n when_o the_o baptize_v person_n ascend_v out_o of_o the_o fount_n immediate_o he_o be_v sign_v in_o the_o face_n by_o the_o presbyter_n with_o holy_a chrism_n here_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o extreme_a unction_n as_o they_o now_o speak_v but_o of_o a_o appendix_n of_o baptism_n as_o they_o be_v wont_v in_o those_o day_n and_o this_o he_o call_v improper_o another_o sacrament_n but_o in_o that_o chap._n the_o eucharist_n he_o speak_v proper_o and_o name_v two_o baptism_n and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n ibid._n cap._n 41._o and_o signify_v the_o sign_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o thing_n signify_v because_o he_o christ_n according_o to_o the_o flesh_n must_v pierce_v the_o heaven_n to_o the_o end_n those_o who_o by_o faith_n be_v renew_a and_o bear_v again_o in_o he_o may_v more_o earnest_o and_o confident_o long_a after_o he_o he_o have_v leave_v unto_o we_o this_o sacrament_n as_o a_o visible_a figure_n and_o resemblance_n a_o sign_n and_o seal_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n that_o by_o these_o thing_n our_o mind_n and_o our_o body_n by_o faith_n may_v be_v more_o plenteous_o nourish_v to_o partake_v of_o invisible_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n now_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n which_o we_o outward_o see_v and_o feel_v but_o that_o which_o be_v inward_o receive_v be_v all_o substance_n and_o truth_n and_o no_o shadow_v or_o resemblance_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o truth_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o very_a flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v manifest_v unto_o we_o for_o the_o very_a flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v crucify_v and_o bury_v even_o the_o sacrament_n of_o that_o true_a flesh_n it_o be_v which_o by_o the_o priest_n upon_o the_o altar_n through_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v consecrate_v and_o hallow_a see_v how_o raban_n distinguish_v that_o which_o be_v receive_v outward_o and_o inward_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o he_o call_v the_o outward_a part_n a_o visible_a figure_n and_o representation_n a_o sign_n and_o seal_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o which_o be_v receive_v inward_o be_v no_o shadow_n or_o resemblance_n but_o substance_n and_o truth_n even_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v crucify_v and_o as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o testimony_n which_o have_v pierce_v the_o heaven_n de_fw-fr institut_fw-la cleric_a lib._n 2._o cap._n 30._o satisfaction_n be_v to_o exclude_v the_o occasion_n and_o suggestion_n of_o sin_n or_o not_o to_o commit_v sin_n again_o reconciliation_n be_v that_o which_o be_v do_v after_o repentance_n for_o as_o we_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n when_o we_o be_v convert_v first_o from_o gentilism_n so_o we_o be_v reconcile_v when_o after_o sin_n we_o return_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 57_o he_o have_v the_o confession_n that_o be_v profess_v at_o that_o time_n say_v 9_o this_o be_v next_o unto_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o most_o certain_a faith_n faith_n a_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o our_o teacher_n have_v give_v that_o we_o shall_v profess_v the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o one_o essence_n of_o one_o power_n and_o sempiternity_n one_o invisible_a god_n so_o that_o the_o propriety_n of_o person_n be_v reserve_v unto_o each_o one_o neither_o the_o trinity_n shall_v be_v divide_v substantial_o nor_o confound_v personal_o to_o confess_v also_o that_o the_o father_n be_v unbegotten_a the_o son_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v neither_o beget_v nor_o unbegotten_a but_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n that_o the_o son_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n by_o generation_n the_o holy_a spirit_n not_o beget_v but_o proceed_v also_o that_o the_o son_n do_v assume_v of_o the_o virgin_n perfect_a manhood_n without_o sin_n that_o who_o of_o his_o goodness_n only_o he_o have_v create_v of_o his_o mercy_n he_o may_v restore_v after_o he_o be_v fall_v who_o very_o be_v crucify_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n and_o with_o the_o same_o flesh_n be_v glorify_v he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n in_o the_o which_o flesh_n he_o be_v expect_v to_o come_v and_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o christ_n in_o one_o person_n bear_v both_o the_o divine_a and_o the_o human_a nature_n be_v perfect_a in_o both_o because_o neither_o the_o
be_v prepare_v thereby_o may_v be_v the_o more_o attentive_a to_o the_o rest_n after_o this_o a_o chanter_n sing_v responsorium_fw-la 13_o so_o name_v because_o when_o one_o rest_v another_o answer_v the_o same_o be_v also_o call_v graduale_n because_o it_o be_v sing_v upon_o the_o step_n of_o the_o pulpit_n after_o it_o halelujah_o 14_o be_v sing_v to_o lift_v up_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n unto_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o raise_v they_o unto_o divine_a contemplation_n then_o the_o gospel_n be_v 15_o read_v in_o audience_n of_o the_o people_n by_o the_o deacon_n with_o great_a authority_n that_o his_o doctrine_n may_v be_v hear_v and_o his_o virtue_n be_v understand_v by_o the_o gospel_n the_o mystery_n of_o who_o body_n be_v then_o celebrate_v then_o the_o offering_n 16_o be_v make_v by_o the_o people_n and_o the_o offertorium_fw-la 17_o be_v sing_v by_o the_o clark_n which_o have_v the_o name_n from_o the_o cause_n as_o if_o one_o will_v say_v the_o song_n of_o the_o offerer_n and_o the_o pallium_fw-la corporale_fw-la 18_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n which_o signify_v the_o cloth_n wherein_o christ_n body_n be_v wrap_v it_o be_v of_o pure_a linen_n and_o not_o of_o silk_n or_o purple_a nor_o of_o litted_a cloth_n as_o we_o find_v to_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o pope_n sylvester_n then_o be_v lay_v down_o the_o holy_a vessel_n 19_o which_o be_v the_o cup_n and_o the_o platter_n upon_o the_o altar_n these_o two_o somewhat_o resemble_v the_o lord_n burial_n because_o as_o then_o christ_n body_n be_v anoint_v with_o odour_n be_v lay_v in_o a_o new_a tomb_n by_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o saint_n so_o now_o his_o mystical_a body_n be_v embalm_v with_o holy_a prayer_n be_v give_v in_o the_o holy_a vessel_n to_o be_v receive_v by_o believer_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o priest_n after_o all_o this_o the_o mass_n 20_o be_v sing_v by_o the_o priest_n who_o when_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o lift_n up_o the_o heart_n 21_o unto_o the_o lord_n he_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o give_v thanks_o 22_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o fill_v his_o mouth_n with_o praise_n pray_v that_o the_o almighty_a god_n the_o father_n to_o who_o the_o heavenly_a power_n do_v serve_v will_v of_o his_o grace_n command_n that_o the_o profession_n of_o man_n may_v be_v conform_a to_o their_o voice_n after_o this_o prayer_n follow_v a_o song_n make_v of_o the_o song_n of_o angel_n and_o man_n 23_o to_o wit_n holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n etc._n etc._n now_o be_v the_o consecration_n 24_o of_o the_o body_n 25_o and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o earnest_a prayer_n unto_o god_n 26_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o lord_n prayer_n be_v toon_v 27._o for_o when_o they_o come_v to_o communicate_v 28_o and_o receive_v 29_o the_o body_n 30_o they_o give_v one_o to_o another_o the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n 31_o and_o they_o sing_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n 32_o who_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o 33_o we_o in_o peace_n perceive_v the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v make_v of_o the_o number_n of_o thy_o child_n and_o have_v all_o our_o sin_n forgive_v we_o after_o the_o communion_n and_o a_o song_n of_o that_o name_n 34_o and_o the_o blessing_n 35_o of_o the_o people_n by_o the_o priest_n a_o deacon_n intimate_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o the_o mass_n be_v end_v 36_o and_o dismiss_v they_o 37._o 12._o methodius_n a_o bishop_n of_o moravia_n juliamentana_n go_v with_o one_o cyril_n language_n the_o bible_n and_o worship_n in_o vulgar_a language_n into_o poland_n in_o the_o day_n of_o lewis_n the_o godly_a and_o convert_v many_o of_o the_o sclavi_n unto_o christianity_n he_o find_v the_o vandal_n letter_n and_o translate_v the_o scripture_n into_o that_o language_n and_o in_o their_o liturgy_n they_o use_v the_o vulgar_a language_n therefore_o he_o be_v summon_v to_o rome_n he_o go_v and_o defend_v himself_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o paul_n rom._n 14._o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o do_v show_v the_o inconvenience_n of_o speak_v in_o a_o unknown_a language_n among_o these_o new_a proselyte_n so_o pope_n nicolaus_n grant_v liberty_n unto_o the_o scalve_n and_o polonian_n to_o use_v their_o own_o language_n when_o he_o return_v from_o rome_n he_o deal_v with_o other_o in_o dalmatia_n and_o illyticum_n to_o put_v away_o the_o latin_a and_o serve_v god_n in_o their_o vulgar_a language_n the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v so_o offend_v with_o he_o that_o he_o be_v constrain_v to_o return_v into_o moravia_n where_o he_o die_v catol_n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 9_o 13._o huldricus_n or_o uulrik_n usual_o call_v saint_n ulrik_n bishop_n of_o augusta_n clergy_n against_o the_o 〈◊〉_d single_a life_n of_o the_o clergy_n vindelicor_n do_v write_v unto_o pope_n nicolaus_n the_o i_o against_o the_o decree_n for_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n after_o a_o modest_a and_o grave_a preface_n he_o say_v since_o there_o be_v very_o many_o proof_n both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new-testament_n let_v it_o not_o i_o beseech_v be_v grievous_a unto_o thy_o fatherhood_n that_o a_o few_o of_o many_o be_v insert_v into_o this_o page_n the_o lord_n in_o the_o old_a law_n ordain_v marriage_n unto_o the_o priest_n which_o he_o be_v never_o read_v to_o have_v forbid_v again_o but_o in_o the_o gospel_n he_o say_v ..._o because_o of_o fornication_n let_v every_o man_n have_v his_o own_o wife_n the_o hypocrite_n say_v false_o this_o belong_v especial_o to_o laic_n and_o they_o themselves_o although_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a order_n spare_v not_o to_o abuse_v other_o man_n wife_n after_o other_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o cit_v unto_o this_o purpose_n some_o testimony_n out_o of_o regula_n clericor_n and_o out_o of_o augustine_n out_o of_o tripartita_n historia_n he_o cit_v the_o history_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a then_o he_o bring_v the_o practice_n of_o pope_n gregory_n the_o i_o who_o once_o condemn_v marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o when_o he_o see_v so_o many_o head_n of_o babe_n even_o more_o than_o 6000_o which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o his_o pond_n he_o condemn_v his_o own_o decree_n and_o say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v then_o to_o give_v occasion_n of_o murder_n and_o then_o ulrik_n infer_v if_o they_o have_v read_v such_o a_o accident_n as_o i_o have_v i_o believe_v they_o will_v not_o possible_o judge_v so_o rash_o ...._o unto_o so_o fond_a filthy_a suggestion_n of_o this_o command_n i_o will_v not_o say_v counsel_n they_o have_v further_o say_v it_o be_v more_o honest_a to_o have_v deal_v with_o many_o woman_n secret_o then_o open_o in_o the_o sight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o man_n to_o be_v knit_v with_o one_o which_o sure_o they_o will_v not_o say_v if_o they_o be_v of_o he_o or_o in_o he_o who_o say_v woe_n to_o you_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n who_o do_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v of_o man_n etc._n etc._n the_o late_a romanist_n have_v great_a spite_n against_o this_o epistle_n and_o call_v it_o a_o lutheran_n fiction_n their_o judices_fw-la expurgatorii_fw-la have_v ordain_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v print_v again_o and_o they_o have_v forge_v argument_n against_o it_o from_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n and_o the_o age_n wherein_o he_o live_v etc._n etc._n but_o the_o more_o they_o study_v to_o darken_v it_o it_o be_v the_o more_o clear_v as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o treatise_n of_o bishop_n hall_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o marry_a clergy_n lib._n 3._o sect_n 2_o 3_o 4._o one_o proof_n of_o it_o be_v th●t_v aeneas_n silvius_n de_fw-fr morib_n german_n speak_v of_o ausburg_n say_v udalrik_n be_v the_o saint_n of_o this_o title_n who_o do_v reprove_v the_o pope_n concern_v concubine_n so_o he_o name_v lawful_a wife_n 14._o gunther_n bishop_n of_o colen_n and_o thietgaud_n bishop_n of_o trever_n go_v etc._n bishop_n call_v the_o pope_n a_o wolf_n etc._n etc._n with_o a_o commission_n from_o their_o nation_n unto_o pope_n nicolaus_n and_o be_v hardly_o deal_v with_o because_o they_o free_o deliver_v the_o grievance_n of_o their_o nation_n they_o escape_v with_o their_o life_n and_o do_v write_v back_o complain_v of_o the_o wrong_n which_o he_o have_v do_v they_o and_o then_o they_o say_v the_o eternal_a emperor_n have_v furnish_v his_o empress_n and_o spouse_n with_o spiritual_a and_o everlasting_a stuff_n and_o beautify_v she_o not_o with_o frail_a or_o perish_a dowry_n ...._o which_o benefit_n thou_o as_o a_o briggaud_n intercepte_v and_o take_v from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o transferre_v unto_o thou_o thou_o be_v a_o wolf_n unto_o the_o sheep_n and_o thou_o kill_v the_o live_n thou_o draw_v the_o strong_a from_o above_o and_o by_o thy_o wonder_n thou_o thruste_v down_o to_o hell_n ..._o thou_o bear_v
the_o i_o that_o authority_n be_v derive_v from_o peter_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n unto_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o privilege_n of_o saint_n peter_n be_v wheresoever_o according_a compare_v rome_n and_o rheims_n compare_v to_o his_o equity_n justice_n be_v do_v no_o less_o in_o rheims_n then_o in_o rome_n and_o no_o more_o in_o rome_n then_o in_o rheims_n but_o be_v alike_o unto_o all_o every_o where_o according_a as_o bishop_n more_o or_o less_o discharge_v their_o office_n and_o he_o expound_v these_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n ..._o as_o augustine_n do_v in_o ser._n 13._o de_fw-fr verb._n dom._n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n upon_o that_o firm_a and_o solid_a confession_n which_o thou_o have_v confess_v ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o hincmar_n bishop_n of_o laudun_n say_v the_o seven_o general_a council_n so_o call_v by_o the_o greek_n indeed_o a_o wicked_a council_n concern_v image_n which_o some_o will_v have_v break_v into_o piece_n and_o some_o will_v have_v to_o be_v worship_v be_v keep_v not_o long_o before_o my_o time_n by_o a_o number_n of_o bishop_n gather_v together_o at_o nice_a the_o act_n thereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v send_v into_o francia_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a the_o see_v apostolic_a willing_a it_o to_o be_v so_o a_o synod_n be_v hold_v in_o germany_n by_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o same_o emperor_n and_o there_o by_o the_o pathway_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n the_o false_a council_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v confute_v and_o utter_o reject_v of_o who_o consutation_n there_o be_v a_o good_a big_a volumn_n send_v from_o charles_n by_o some_o bishop_n unto_o rome_n which_o in_o my_o young_a year_n i_o do_v read_v in_o the_o palace_n this_o testimony_n be_v of_o more_o credit_n than_o a_o hundred_o late_a writer_n who_o deny_v that_o synod_n at_o frankford_n or_o that_o a_o synod_n under_o charles_n do_v condemn_v the_o second_o synod_n at_o nice_a thereafter_o in_o that_o epistle_n he_o say_v we_o shall_v believe_v that_o the_o motion_n of_o repentance_n be_v from_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o god_n will_v give_v they_o repentance_n ...._o to_o have_v church_n be_v not_o to_o have_v a_o primacy_n in_o divine_a thing_n for_o then_o all_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v primacy_n all_o those_o wicked_a man_n rule_v not_o the_o church_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v within_o neither_o be_v it_o deny_v but_o they_o give_v baptism_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o rebuke_v his_o nephew_n for_o deny_v baptism_n unto_o infant_n catol_n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 9_o 17._o at_o that_o time_n be_v much_o to_o do_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n gotteschalk_n gotteschalk_n the_o five_o article_n of_o gotteschalk_n by_o birth_n a_o frank_n or_o belgik_n as_o aventin_n lib._n 4._o annal._n boior_n call_v he_o be_v ordain_v a_o priest_n by_o rigbold_n chorepiscopus_fw-la in_o the_o vacancy_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rheims_n the_o now_o name_v hincmar_n in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n which_o be_v in_o biblioth_n sixt._n senen_n part_n 1._o pag._n 1053._o edit_n colon._n write_v that_o he_o hold_v these_o five_o article_n first_o god_n before_o all_o age_n and_o ere_o he_o make_v any_o thing_n even_o from_o the_o beginning_n do_v predestinate_a unto_o the_o kingdom_n who_o he_o will_v and_o do_v predestinate_a unto_o destruction_n who_o he_o will_v 2._o they_o who_o be_v predestinate_a unto_o destruction_n can_v be_v save_v and_o who_o be_v predestinate_a unto_o the_o kingdom_n can_v perish_v 3._o god_n will_v not_o that_o all_o man_n be_v save_v but_o only_o they_o who_o be_v save_v and_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v who_o will_v that_o all_o man_n be_v save_v he_o mean_v only_o all_o they_o who_o shall_v be_v save_v 4._o christ_n come_v not_o to_o save_v all_o man_n nor_o do_v he_o suffer_v for_o all_o man_n but_o only_o for_o they_o who_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o passion_n 5._o since_o the_o first_o man_n fall_v of_o his_o free_a will_n none_o of_o we_o can_v use_v freewill_n to_o do_v good_a but_o only_o to_o do_v evil_a remigius_n bishop_n of_o lion_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n oppose_v be_v defend_v and_o oppose_v defend_v these_o five_o article_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v loc_n cit_fw-la whereupon_o hincmar_n write_v unto_o pope_n nicolaus_n as_o baron_n annal._n ad_fw-la an._n 948._o relate_v against_o gotteschalk_n and_o call_v these_o article_n the_o heresy_n of_o the_o predestinatians_n which_o be_v overthrow_v in_o africa_n and_o thereafter_o in_o france_n by_o authority_n of_o pope_n celestine_n and_o by_o the_o care_n and_o vigilancy_n of_o prosper_n when_o gotteschalk_n return_v from_o italy_n raban_n bishop_n of_o mentz_n summon_v he_o into_o a_o synod_n and_o when_o he_o can_v not_o persuade_v he_o to_o change_v his_o mind_n he_o do_v write_v unto_o hincmar_n and_o other_o and_o do_v oppugn_v some_o conclusion_n which_o he_o have_v wrest_v from_o these_o five_o article_n remigius_n write_v again_o show_v that_o all_o the_o argument_n of_o raban_n do_v not_o touch_v the_o article_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o above_o name_v bibliotheca_fw-la then_o hincmar_n summon_v gotteschalk_n unto_o a_o synod_n of_o 12_o bishop_n and_o some_o priest_n and_o abbot_n in_o carisiac_a on_o isara_n where_o four_o article_n be_v enact_v against_o he_o he_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o contumacy_n carisiac_a and_o he_o condemn_v the_o article_n at_o carisiac_a he_o be_v whip_v with_o rod_n and_o cast_v in_o prison_n the_o church_n of_o lion_n after_o sight_n of_o these_o four_o article_n send_v forth_o their_o censure_n of_o they_o both_o which_o be_v in_o biblioth_n cit_fw-la pag._n 1082._o the_o canon_n be_v these_o first_o god_n almighty_a make_v man_n without_o sin_n upright_o with_o free_a will_n and_o set_v he_o in_o paradise_n who_o he_o will_v to_o abide_v in_o the_o holiness_n of_o righteousness_n 2._o man_n use_v ill_o his_o freewill_n do_v sin_n and_o fall_v and_o become_v the_o mass_n of_o perdition_n of_o mankind_n but_o the_o good_a and_o just_a god_n do_v choose_v of_o the_o same_o mass_n of_o perdition_n according_a to_o his_o foreknowledge_n who_o by_o his_o grace_n he_o do_v predestinate_a to_o life_n and_o prepare_v life_n eternal_a for_o they_o 3._o but_o other_o who_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o righteousness_n he_o leave_v in_o the_o mass_n of_o perdition_n he_o foreknow_v they_o to_o perish_v but_o he_o do_v not_o predestinate_a that_o they_o shall_v perish_v yet_o because_o he_o be_v just_a he_o do_v predestinate_a everlasting_a punishment_n unto_o they_o and_o therefore_o we_o say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o predestination_n of_o god_n which_o concern_v the_o gift_n of_o grace_n or_o the_o render_n of_o righteousness_n can._n ii_o in_o the_o first_o man_n we_o have_v lose_v the_o freedom_n of_o will_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v by_o christ_n and_o we_o have_v free_a will_n unto_o good_a be_v preven_v and_o help_v by_o grace_n and_o we_o have_v free_a will_n unto_o evil_n be_v forsake_v of_o grace_n and_o we_o have_v freewill_n because_o it_o be_v free_v by_o grace_n and_o by_o grace_n heal_v from_o corruption_n can._n iii_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n without_o exception_n to_o be_v save_v although_o all_o man_n be_v not_o save_v and_o that_o some_o be_v save_v it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o he_o who_o save_v and_o that_o some_o perish_v it_o be_v the_o merit_n of_o they_o who_o perish_v can._n iu._n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n as_o there_o be_v not_o be_v nor_o shall_v be_v any_o man_n who_o nature_n be_v not_o assume_v in_o he_o so_o there_o be_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v no_o man_n for_o who_o he_o do_v not_o die_v although_o all_o be_v not_o redeem_v by_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o passion_n it_o concern_v not_o the_o greatness_n and_o copiousness_n of_o the_o price_n but_o it_o concern_v the_o part_n of_o unbeliever_n and_o they_o who_o believe_v not_o with_o that_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n for_o the_o cup_n of_o man_n salvation_n which_o be_v make_v through_o human_a infirmity_n and_o divine_a virtue_n have_v in_o itself_o that_o it_o may_v be_v profitable_a unto_o all_o but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o drunken_a it_o cure_v not_o follow_v the_o sum_n i._n be_v censure_v by_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n can._n i._n of_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o first_o canon_n be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n without_o which_o no_o rational_a creature_n ever_o can_v or_o now_o can_v or_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o be_v or_o abide_v or_o persist_v in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n as_o if_o man_n have_v be_v
and_o people_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o zeal_n and_o study_n of_o good_a work_n 12._o a_o form_n of_o hear_v confession_n and_o prescribe_v penance_n be_v order_v ca._n 13._o eight_o principal_a vice_n be_v declare_v that_o all_o man_n may_v know_v they_o and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n abstain_v from_o they_o ca._n 14._o bishop_n be_v command_v to_o read_v more_o diligent_o the_o scripture_n and_o write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o to_o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n ca._n 17._o bishop_n and_o abbot_n shall_v not_o permit_v wanton_a jest_n in_o their_o hear_n but_o have_v with_o they_o the_o poor_a and_o needy_a and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v sound_v beside_o they_o ca._n 35._o as_o the_o lord_n command_v no_o servile_a work_n shall_v be_v do_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n nor_o market_n be_v hold_v ca._n 39_o tithe_n shall_v be_v give_v full_o ca._n 40._o prayer_n and_o oblation_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o child_n that_o god_n will_v preserve_v they_o in_o all_o felicity_n in_o this_o world_n and_o of_o his_o mercy_n make_v they_o rejoice_v with_o the_o holy_a angel_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 4._o at_o cabilon_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o bishop_n and_o priest_n shall_v read_v the_o scripture_n diligent_o and_o teach_v their_o people_n they_o shall_v maintain_v and_o erect_v school_n for_o young_a one_o priest_n and_o monk_n be_v rebuke_v which_o do_v persuade_v people_n to_o give_v liberal_o unto_o church_n and_o monastery_n that_o themselves_o may_v live_v at_o more_o ease_n and_o they_o order_v that_o all_o such_o good_n as_o parent_n at_o their_o death_n have_v give_v foolish_o shall_v be_v restore_v unto_o their_o child_n bishop_n and_o priest_n shall_v not_o be_v drink_v for_o how_o can_v such_o rebuke_v the_o people_n they_o shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o civil_a affair_n nor_o exact_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o inferior_a priest_n nor_o for_o chrism_n nor_o for_o dedication_n of_o church_n or_o ordination_n of_o priest_n they_o who_o give_v public_a scandal_n shall_v make_v public_a repentance_n concern_v pilgrimage_n they_o note_v many_o fault_n clark_n think_v themselves_o free_a from_o discharge_v their_o office_n and_o cleanse_v from_o their_o sin_n if_o they_o go_v to_o such_o or_o such_o place_n laic_n think_v they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o will_v if_o they_o go_v thither_o and_o pray_v nobleman_n under_o pretext_n of_o pilgrimage_n to_o ward_n rome_n or_o turone_n do_v spoil_v many_o poor_a subject_n and_o poor_a folk_n go_v in_o pilgrimage_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o more_o free_a occasion_n of_o beg_v and_o many_o time_n say_v that_o they_o be_v go_v thither_o when_o they_o have_v no_o such_o purpose_n and_o some_o be_v so_o foolish_a that_o they_o think_v the_o only_a sight_n of_o such_o place_n cleanse_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n and_o how_o all_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v redress_v they_o expect_v the_o will_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o not_o a_o word_n of_o reformation_n by_o the_o pope_n 5._o at_o aken_n be_v a_o council_n by_o command_n of_o lewis_n the_o godly_a there_o it_o be_v decree_v among_o other_o thing_n first_o that_o every_o church_n shall_v have_v sufficient_a maintenance_n for_o the_o priest_n that_o none_o need_v to_o beg_v 2._o none_o of_o the_o clergy_n of_o whatsoever_o degree_n shall_v wear_v any_o cloth_n of_o scarlet_a or_o such_o precious_a colour_n nor_o have_v ring_n on_o their_o finger_n 3._o prelate_n shall_v not_o have_v too_o large_a house_n nor_o many_o horse_n nor_o frequent_a harlot_n nor_o play_v at_o dice_n nor_o have_v gold_n or_o silver_n on_o their_o shoe_n slipper_n nor_o girdle_n whence_o may_v be_v understand_v the_o pride_n and_o pomp_n of_o prelate_n in_o those_o day_n which_o give_v occasion_n unto_o platina_n to_o say_v o_o if_o thou_o lewis_n be_v now_o alive_a the_o church_n have_v need_n of_o thy_o holy_a statute_n and_o censure_n all_o order_n of_o the_o church_n be_v now_o so_o luxurious_a and_o voluptuous_a thou_o will_v see_v now_o not_o only_o man_n which_o haply_o may_v seem_v light_a but_o horse_n and_o other_o beast_n clothe_v in_o purpure_a with_o a_o company_n of_o young_a man_n run_v before_o and_o another_o of_o old_a follow_v after_o not_o upon_o ass_n as_o christ_n do_v who_o be_v the_o only_a example_n of_o live_v well_o upon_o earth_n but_o upon_o fierce_a and_o harnished_a horse_n as_o if_o they_o be_v triumph_v over_o a_o enemy_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v say_v he_o of_o their_o silver_n vessel_n and_o precious_a householdstuff_n see_v the_o ancient_a dish_n of_o italy_n and_o ornament_n of_o attalus_n and_o vessel_n of_o corinth_n be_v nothing_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o and_o what_o follow_v on_o this_o their_o intemperance_n i_o forbear_v to_o mention_v 6._o at_o melda_n upon_o the_o river_n matrona_n be_v a_o synod_n assemble_v by_o charles_n the_o two_o where_o among_o other_o canon_n it_o be_v decree_v first_o that_o every_o bishop_n shall_v have_v in_o his_o house_n one_o which_o according_a to_o the_o pure_a mind_n of_o the_o catholic_n father_n who_o be_v able_a to_o instruct_v the_o priest_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n lest_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v his_o church_n shall_v be_v without_o the_o lantern_n of_o the_o word_n 2._o that_o presbyter_n shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o continue_v abroad_o but_o that_o they_o dwell_v at_o their_o church_n 3._o a_o charge_n be_v give_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n unto_o all_o bishop_n unto_o king_n and_o all_o in_o authority_n and_o unto_o all_o who_o have_v power_n in_o election_n and_o ordination_n in_o any_o order_n ecclesiastical_a that_o none_o be_v admit_v by_o simony_n by_o whatsoever_o faction_n promise_n or_o gift_n either_o by_o the_o person_n or_o another_o for_o he_o 4._o that_o no_o bishop_n do_v retire_v into_o a_o remote_a place_n for_o his_o own_o ease_n and_o so_o neglect_v his_o charge_n but_o that_o he_o visit_v his_o parish_n diligent_o and_o he_o with_o his_o child_n live_v in_o chastity_n sobriety_n and_o hospitality_n 5._o that_o the_o damnable_a custom_n of_o some_o bishop_n be_v amend_v who_o never_o or_o seldom_o visit_v their_o people_n although_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v i_o have_v set_v thou_o a_o watchman_n etc._n etc._n 7._o at_o rome_n be_v a_o synod_n of_o 47_o bishop_n convene_v by_o pope_n leo_n the_o iv_o at_o the_o command_n of_o lotharius_n where_o these_o former_a canon_n be_v confirm_v in_o other_o word_n and_o moreover_o that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v not_o be_v consecrate_v unless_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n do_v crave_v he_o priest_n shall_v be_v diligent_a in_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o in_o teach_v the_o people_n and_o shall_v not_o permit_v game_n in_o their_o sight_n priest_n shall_v not_o be_v take_v up_o with_o senory_n hunt_v hawk_v or_o any_o rural_a work_n nor_o go_v abroad_o without_o a_o sacerdotal_a habit_n abbot_n must_v be_v able_a to_o cognosce_fw-la and_o amend_v whatsoever_o may_v be_v do_v amiss_o by_o their_o brethren_n 8._o at_o valentia_n an._n 855._o be_v a_o council_n by_o command_n of_o the_o same_o lotharius_n there_o be_v three_o metropolitan_n remigius_n of_o lion_n agilmar_n of_o vienna_n roland_n of_o arles_n and_o 14_o bishop_n with_o a_o venerable_a company_n of_o priest_n and_o deacon_n six_o canon_n be_v enact_v the_o first_o for_o eschue_v all_o new-coined_a word_n in_o doctrine_n ca._n 2._o god_n foreknow_v and_o have_v eternal_o foreknow_v both_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o the_o godly_a be_v to_o do_v and_o the_o evil_n which_o the_o wicked_a be_v to_o do_v because_o we_o have_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o scripture_n say_v o_o eternal_a god_n which_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o hide_v thing_n ere_o they_o be_v do_v dan._n 13._o we_o faithful_o hold_v and_o it_o please_v to_o hold_v still_o that_o he_o foreknow_v that_o good_a man_n be_v to_o be_v good_a by_o his_o grace_n and_o according_a to_o the_o same_o grace_n be_v to_o receive_v everlasting_a reward_n and_o that_o he_o foreknow_v that_o the_o wicked_a be_v to_o be_v wicked_a through_o their_o own_o wickedness_n and_o be_v to_o be_v damn_v with_o everlasting_a punishment_n through_o his_o justice_n as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v power_n belong_v to_o god_n and_o unto_o he_o belong_v mercy_n that_o he_o may_v render_v unto_o every_o one_o according_a to_o their_o work_n and_o the_o apostle_n teach_v to_o they_o who_o by_o patient_a continuance_n in_o well_o do_v seek_v glory_n and_o honour_n and_o immortality_n he_o give_v eternal_a life_n but_o unto_o they_o which_o be_v contentious_a ......_o and_o again_o in_o flame_a fire_n render_v vengeance_n on_o they_o which_o know_v not_o god_n ...._o and_o that_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n do_v not_o put_v upon_o any_o evil_a man_n any_o
apparent_a virtue_n come_v not_o from_o we_o but_o from_o god_n or_o lest_o it_o be_v think_v that_o we_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n worthy_a of_o praise_n as_o of_o ourselves_o let_v we_o ascribe_v all_o unto_o god_n and_o let_v we_o acknowledge_v that_o be_v of_o his_o gift_n whatsoever_o we_o do_v well_o on_o gal._n 2._o paul_n demonstrate_v in_o this_o place_n that_o he_o be_v equal_a unto_o peter_n for_o say_v he_o he_o who_o wrought_v by_o peter_n in_o the_o apostleship_n of_o circumcision_n wrought_v also_o by_o i_o among_o the_o gentile_n ......_o some_o say_v it_o be_v not_o peter_n the_o excellent_a follower_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v rebuke_v by_o paul_n but_o another_o cephas_n ..._o but_o hear_v most_o wise_a man_n for_o neither_o do_v we_o say_v that_o peter_n as_o ignorant_a what_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v be_v rebuke_v by_o paul_n but_o we_o say_v that_o he_o willing_o do_v admit_v reproof_n that_o he_o may_v give_v unto_o other_o a_o example_n of_o patience_n on_o eph._n 1._o at_o these_o word_n the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n in_o we_o he_o say_v nor_o be_v it_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v how_o great_a be_v that_o power_n and_o virtue_n which_o change_v a_o man_n mind_n from_o the_o wont_a custom_n and_o to_o pull_v it_o out_o of_o error_n from_o which_o to_o draw_v a_o man_n stick_v in_o they_o so_o great_a power_n be_v requisite_a that_o so_o great_a power_n scarce_o appear_v in_o raise_v the_o dead_a for_o the_o lord_n do_v raise_v the_o dead_a with_o one_o word_n and_o yet_o he_o convert_v not_o the_o jew_n to_o he_o by_o persuade_v with_o multitude_n of_o word_n and_o miraculous_a work_n he_o say_v therefore_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v necessary_a that_o we_o may_v learn_v the_o same_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v that_o we_o have_v receive_v it_o by_o the_o great_a power_n and_o work_n of_o god_n for_o as_o he_o raise_v christ_n from_o the_o dead_a so_o have_v he_o bring_v we_o unto_o light_n when_o we_o be_v dead_a and_o have_v draw_v we_o from_o infidelity_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o virtue_n on_o cap._n 2._o yea_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v a_o great_a power_n to_o bring_v into_o the_o right_a way_n stray_v soul_n and_o addict_v to_o sin_n then_o to_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o at_o these_o word_n by_o who_o grace_n you_o be_v save_v he_o say_v he_o put_v in_o this_o as_o be_v strike_v with_o astonishment_n wonder_v at_o the_o unspeakable_a gift_n of_o god_n for_o he_o say_v you_o be_v not_o save_v by_o your_o travel_n or_o work_v but_o only_o by_o grace_n as_o for_o your_o work_n certain_o you_o be_v worthy_a of_o wrath_n and_o punishment_n on_o cap._n 6._o the_o apostle_n show_v how_o parent_n may_v bring_v their_o child_n into_o obedience_n if_o you_o will_v say_v he_o have_v your_o child_n obedient_a unto_o you_o bring_v they_o unto_o and_o acquaint_v they_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o say_v not_o let_v monk_n study_v the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o christian_a and_o especial_o of_o he_o who_o converse_v in_o worldly_a affair_n and_o the_o rather_o that_o he_o have_v need_n of_o more_o help_n as_o who_o be_v drive_v among_o the_o wave_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o it_o be_v most_o profitable_a for_o thou_o that_o thy_o child_n both_o hear_v and_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o out_o of_o they_o they_o shall_v learn_v honour_v thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n but_o if_o thou_o breed_v thy_o child_n in_o the_o book_n of_o heathen_n they_o will_v learn_v very_o bad_a thing_n out_o of_o they_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v if_o they_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n on_o 1_o thess_n 1._o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o soul_n be_v bring_v unto_o faith_n and_o salvation_n not_o by_o persuasion_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n on_o 2_o thess_n 2._o the_o lord_n will_v not_o come_v unless_o there_o come_v first_o a_o depart_a that_o be_v the_o antichrist_n who_o he_o call_v a_o depart_a because_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o will_v cause_v many_o to_o depart_v from_o christ_n ...._o so_o that_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o a_o god_n not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n only_o but_o he_o will_v sit_v in_o all_o church_n every_o where_o show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n he_o say_v not_o say_v but_o show_v that_o be_v he_o will_v attempt_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v god_n for_o he_o will_v make_v such_o great_a work_n and_o sign_n that_o he_o may_v deceive_v all_o man_n ...._o what_o withhold_v that_o be_v hinder_v but_o what_o be_v that_o some_o have_v say_v it_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n some_o say_v the_o roman_a empire_n to_o which_o opinion_n john_n chrysostom_n agree_v for_o unless_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v destroy_v antichrist_n can_v have_v no_o way_n to_o do_v as_o he_o will_v paul_n have_v express_v this_o dark_o for_o he_o will_v not_o rash_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o roman_n nor_o cast_v himself_o into_o danger_n in_o vain_a for_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o roman_a empire_n will_v be_v take_v away_o short_o they_o present_o will_v have_v bury_v he_o quick_a as_o threaten_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o they_o will_v have_v kill_v all_o the_o believer_n that_o follow_v he_o as_o if_o they_o wish_v the_o overthrow_n of_o so_o great_a a_o empire_n ...._o only_o he_o that_o with_o hold_n shall_v withhold_v ...._o that_o be_v when_o the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o then_o shall_v he_o come_v for_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v under_o the_o fear_n of_o this_o no_o man_n will_v easy_o submit_v himself_o unto_o another_o but_o when_o this_o be_v overthrow_v he_o will_v begin_v another_o dominion_n and_o as_o if_o all_o be_v he_o he_o will_v pervert_v the_o thing_n that_o concern_v both_o god_n and_o man_n for_o as_o other_o monarchy_n be_v take_v away_o one_o by_o another_o before_o the_o height_n of_o the_o roman_n ...._o so_o this_o kingdom_n of_o the_o roman_n shall_v be_v destroy_v by_o the_o antichrist_n and_o daniel_n have_v prophesy_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o some_o understand_v otherwise_o but_o i_o will_v have_v thou_o to_o think_v as_o we_o have_v say_v with_o bless_a chrysostom_n on_o 1_o tim._n 1._o at_o the_o last_o word_n he_o say_v thou_o see_v how_o to_o search_v curious_o into_o divine_a thing_n turn_v into_o blasphemy_n for_o it_o be_v injurious_a against_o god_n when_o we_o endeavour_v to_o comprehend_v in_o our_o mind_n and_o think_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o his_o will_n and_o dispensation_n on_o cap._n 3._o one_o may_v ask_v why_o the_o apostle_n omit_v the_o priest_n because_o what_o thing_n be_v speak_v of_o bishop_n belong_v unto_o priest_n for_o these_o be_v command_v to_o instruct_v other_o and_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o be_v inferior_n unto_o they_o by_o the_o only_a ceremony_n of_o consecration_n on_o 2_o tim._n 3._o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a amendment_n say_v he_o must_v be_v seek_v from_o the_o scripture_n that_o nothing_o may_v be_v lack_v to_o he_o which_o walk_v according_a to_o god_n if_o therefore_o thou_o desire_v to_o be_v perfect_a and_o wish_v neither_o to_o be_v cast_v down_o with_o adversity_n nor_o puff_v up_o with_o prosperity_n for_o that_o be_v perfection_n seek_v advice_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n when_o thou_o want_v i_o and_o since_o he_o write_v of_o such_o read_n unto_o timothy_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n how_o much_o more_o be_v we_o to_o be_v exhort_v thereunto_o which_o have_v need_v of_o this_o spirit_n and_o observe_v how_o we_o can_v be_v upright_o and_o perfect_a unless_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v help_v we_o on_o heb._n 9_o so_o and_o christ_n be_v once_o offer_v by_o who_o be_v he_o offer_v by_o himself_o and_o not_o by_o another_o man_n for_o though_o he_o be_v the_o highpriest_n he_o be_v also_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o oblation_n to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o ...._o why_o say_v he_o of_o many_o and_o not_o of_o all_o man_n because_o all_o man_n believe_v not_o but_o christ_n death_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o perdition_n of_o all_o man_n that_o be_v it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o all_o man_n perish_v not_o and_z and_z it_o be_v pay_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n and_o he_o die_v for_o all_o man_n so_o far_o as_o be_v in_o he_o and_o nevertheless_o he_o have_v not_o take_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n because_o they_o fight_v against_o he_o and_o so_o they_o
mitre_n but_o if_o you_o despise_v they_o you_o may_v at_o last_o have_v they_o as_o you_o listen_v for_o the_o papal_a curse_n may_v be_v compare_v to_o domitian_n thunder_n the_o crack_n seem_v terrible_a but_o the_o cause_n and_o effect_n of_o it_o be_v but_o a_o toy_n hildebrand_n set_v his_o heart_n to_o exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o power_n begin_v first_o to_o prosecute_v the_o act_n of_o his_o predecessor_n concern_v the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n or_o as_o they_o speak_v simony_n and_o he_o require_v the_o emperor_n to_o cast_v out_o all_o such_o bishop_n the_o emperor_n think_v the_o pope_n word_n to_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n do_v obey_v without_o delay_n and_o without_o any_o other_o order_n deni_v the_o bishop_n their_o revenue_n and_o think_v he_o be_v do_v god_n good_a service_n so_o long_o as_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o craft_n of_o hildebrand_n who_o he_o cast_v off_o hildebrand_n do_v promote_v and_o have_v divide_v they_o from_o the_o emperor_n he_o tie_v they_o to_o himself_o by_o oath_n and_o other_o favour_n benno_n cardin._n at_o that_o time_n the_o norman_n have_v conquer_v pulia_n calabria_n and_o magna_n graecia_n be_v in_o fear_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o mathildis_n the_o rich_a duchess_n of_o italy_n be_v easy_o entice_v hildebrand_n draw_v they_o two_o on_o his_o side_n emperor_n the_o pope_n excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o saxon_n who_o be_v not_o well_o please_v that_o the_o empire_n be_v go_v from_o their_o house_n and_o many_o other_o he_o be_v so_o strengthen_v charge_v the_o emperor_n to_o appear_v upon_o the_o second_o day_n of_o the_o second_o week_n in_o lent_n an._n 1076._o in_o his_o council_n at_o lateran_n for_o his_o simony_n with_o certification_n if_o he_o appear_v not_o that_o day_n he_o will_v excommunicate_v he_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o young_a emperor_n be_v trouble_v with_o war_n against_o the_o saracen_n think_v it_o not_o so_o necessary_a to_o attend_v the_o synod_n without_o any_o more_o accusation_n citation_n or_o conviction_n the_o pope_n excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n and_o his_o counsellor_n herman_n bishop_n of_o bambergh_n and_o some_o other_o unheard_a for_o simony_n that_o be_v because_o the_o emperor_n have_v give_v and_o they_o have_v accept_v benefice_n without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v say_v by_o card._n benno_n that_o none_o of_o the_o cardinal_n will_v subscribe_v the_o sentence_n the_o emperor_n be_v not_o a_o little_a offend_v at_o this_o new_a or_o oppose_v the_o pope_n be_v oppose_v unknown_a presumption_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o convene_v a_o council_n at_o worm_n where_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n except_o the_o saxon_n and_o many_o out_o of_o france_n and_o italy_n be_v assemble_v there_o the_o pope_n be_v accuse_v of_o ambition_n perjury_n wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o serve_v his_o turn_n usurp_v the_o office_n of_o king_n and_o priest_n as_o decius_z and_o other_o heathen_n have_v do_v in_o old_a time_n and_o of_o many_o infamous_a thing_n do_v through_o avarice_n and_o pride_n they_o conclude_v hildebrand_n be_v worthy_a of_o deposition_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n in_o a_o synod_n at_o ticino_n subscribe_v the_o same_o sentence_n catalo_n test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 13._o alb._n crantzius_n in_o saxon._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 5._o say_v the_o sheep_n do_v judge_n despise_v and_o forsake_v the_o shepherd_n whether_o formality_n can_v be_v have_v at_o that_o time_n or_o what_o equity_n be_v on_o either_o side_n the_o reader_n may_v judge_v but_o clear_v it_o be_v the_o pope_n be_v oppose_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o two_o synod_n crantzius_n say_v they_o write_v a_o letter_n unto_o he_o which_o they_o conclude_v thus_o because_o thy_o installing_n be_v with_o so_o many_o enormity_n and_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o so_o grievous_a a_o storm_n by_o the_o abuse_n of_o thy_o novation_n and_o we_o find_v that_o thy_o life_n be_v blot_v with_o so_o manifold_a infamy_n and_o so_o grievous_a a_o scandal_n be_v approach_v as_o we_o never_o promise_v obedience_n unto_o thou_o so_o from_o hence_o we_o renounce_v any_o obedience_n and_o because_o thou_o do_v not_o account_v any_o of_o we_o a_o bishop_n as_o thou_o have_v public_o proclaim_v none_o of_o we_o will_v account_v thou_o apostolical_a any_o more_o the_o power_n that_o be_v grant_v unto_o henry_n the_o iii_o of_o create_a high-priest_n make_v they_o so_o bold_a say_v crantz_n roland_n a_o priest_n of_o parma_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n with_o this_o letter_n and_o to_o summon_v hildebrand_n in_o the_o name_n of_o this_o council_n to_o yield_v up_o his_o seat_n and_o to_o summon_v the_o cardinal_n to_o repair_v unto_o the_o emperor_n for_o a_o new_a election_n pope_n gregory_n assemble_v the_o cardinal_n in_o the_o lateran_n first_o he_o kill_v the_o messenger_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o he_o condemn_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o council_n 3._o he_o depose_v sigefrid_n bishop_n of_o mentz_n with_o all_o other_o who_o have_v be_v in_o that_o council_n 4._o he_o deprive_v the_o emperor_n of_o his_o title_n and_o release_v all_o his_o subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o obedience_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o emperor_n send_v through_o all_o nation_n far_o and_o near_o his_o letter_n declare_v how_o presumptuous_o and_o unjust_o the_o pope_n have_v deal_v with_o he_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n some_o be_v ●eeld_v the_o emperor_n be_v constrain_v to_o ●eeld_v persuade_v by_o the_o saxon_n some_o fear_v that_o thunder_n and_o some_o rejoice_n in_o a_o new_a occasion_n of_o usurpation_n do_v assemble_v at_o oppenheim_n october_n the_o 1._o and_o they_o conclude_v to_o fall_v from_o henry_n unless_o he_o will_v submit_v unto_o the_o pope_n and_o confess_v his_o error_n and_o they_o prescribe_v the_o manner_n as_o follow_v such_o be_v the_o peevishness_n and_o inconstancy_n of_o the_o german_n the_o young_a emperor_n see_v that_o his_o prince_n be_v ready_a to_o forsake_v he_o promise_v upon_o oath_n that_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v come_v into_o germany_n he_o will_v ask_v forgiveness_n and_o they_o engage_v themselves_o to_o accompany_v he_o thereafter_o to_o his_o coronation_n at_o rome_n when_o the_o pope_n be_v come_v to_o france_n intend_v for_o augsburg_n as_o it_o be_v appoint_v to_o meet_v the_o emperor_n venericus_n bishop_n of_o verceles_n make_v he_o believe_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v come_v with_o a_o army_n against_o he_o and_o advise_v he_o to_o retire_v for_o his_o safety_n unto_o camisio_n a_o city_n of_o the_o duchess_n mathildis_n henry_n hear_v of_o this_o vain_a fear_n and_o that_o his_o noble_n have_v forsake_v he_o follow_v the_o pope_n base_o and_o abuse_v base_o he_o lay_v aside_o all_o his_o royalty_n and_o come_v with_o his_o empress_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o winter_n unto_o canusio_fw-la he_o be_v stay_v at_o the_o gate_n and_o stand_v with_o bare_a foot_n the_o space_n of_o three_o day_n do_v humble_o call_v for_o audience_n on_o the_o three_o day_n answer_n be_v bring_v his_o holiness_n be_v not_o at_o leisure_n the_o emperor_n continue_v entreat_v that_o he_o may_v be_v hear_v fourteen_o cardinal_n and_o the_o archdeacon_n and_o the_o primicerius_fw-la with_o many_o other_o clark_n of_o lateran_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o who_o seat_n now_o all_o the_o world_n be_v obedient_a say_v pet._n mexia_n consider_v this_o intolerable_a arrogancy_n go_v away_o and_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o abovenamed_a venericus_n thereafter_o write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr discordia_fw-la regni_fw-la &_o sacerdotii_fw-la against_o the_o pope_n at_o last_o by_o entreaty_n of_o the_o duchess_n and_o of_o azo_n marquis_n of_o ateste_n and_o of_o the_o abbot_n of_o clumak_n the_o servant_n of_o servant_n of_o servant_n be_v please_v on_o the_o four_o day_n to_o accept_v the_o emperor_n on_o these_o condition_n first_o on_o the_o pope_n part_n he_o shall_v free_o exerce_fw-la all_o pastoral_n charge_n through_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o empire_n 2._o on_o the_o other_o side_n henry_n shall_v do_v penance_n as_o the_o pope_n shall_v in_o join_v he_o 3._o he_o shall_v appear_v at_o any_o time_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v appoint_v 4._o he_o shall_v be_v content_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v judge_n of_o his_o cause_n 5._o he_o shall_v answer_v to_o all_o accusation_n to_o be_v lay_v against_o he_o in_o the_o council_n and_o shall_v never_o seek_v any_o revenge_n 6._o whether_o he_o be_v clear_v or_o not_o clear_v in_o the_o council_n he_o shall_v stand_v to_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n either_o to_o have_v the_o kingdom_n restore_v or_o not_o restore_v 7._o before_o the_o trial_n of_o his_o cause_n he_o shall_v not_o use_v his_o royal_a ornament_n sceptre_n or_o crown_n nor_o usurp_v authority_n to_o govern_v nor_o crave_v any_o oath_n of_o obedience_n from_o the_o
soul_n that_o be_v both_o bodily_a and_o spiritual_o see_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n we_o eat_v and_o drink_v corporal_o as_o oft_o as_o we_o receive_v the_o lord_n body_n from_o the_o altar_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o it_o be_v eat_v and_o drunken_a spiritual_o with_o the_o spiritual_a mouth_n of_o the_o soul_n when_o sweet_o and_o profitable_o as_o augustine_n say_v it_o be_v call_v to_o memory_n that_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n hang_v on_o the_o cross_n rise_v again_o appear_v ascend_v and_o will_v return_v again_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n the_o lord_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n take_v eat_v augustine_n endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v the_o spiritual_a eat_n tract_n 26._o in_o johan._n when_o he_o say_v eat_v the_o heavenly_a bread_n spiritual_o bring_v innocence_n unto_o the_o altar_n this_o than_o be_v the_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n that_o whosoever_o eat_v of_o it_o shall_v not_o die_v but_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o virtue_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o not_o to_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n who_o eat_v inward_o not_o outward_o who_o eat_v with_o heart_n and_o not_o who_o chew_v with_o tooth_n here_o if_o lanfrank_n by_o his_o bodily_a eat_n or_o eat_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n will_v have_v both_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o signify_v thing_n to_o be_v take_v bodily_a his_o argument_n against_o berengarius_fw-la be_v silly_a or_o if_o he_o mean_v it_o only_o of_o the_o sign_n berengarius_fw-la say_v the_o same_o but_o guitmund_n bishop_n of_o aversa_n turn_v further_o aside_o and_o write_v more_o bitter_o and_o less_o true_o against_o berengarius_fw-la who_o can_v hold_v laughter_n say_v he_o when_o he_o hear_v berengarius_fw-la expound_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n this_o be_v my_o body_n i._n e._n this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n o_o most_o impudent_a foolishness_n why_o may_v not_o the_o tooth_n touch_v that_o which_o the_o hand_n touch_v if_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v touch_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o thomas_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a woman_n why_o may_v it_o not_o to_o day_n be_v touch_v more_o easy_o and_o sure_o touch_v that_o be_v chew_v by_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o faithful_a he_o therefore_o who_o give_v himself_o to_o be_v handle_v after_o the_o resurrection_n he_o will_v not_o flee_v from_o our_o tooth_n for_o uncleanness_n etc._n etc._n nevertheless_o berengarius_fw-la abode_n constant_a and_o be_v in_o high_a estimation_n both_o with_o nobility_n and_o people_n and_o therefore_o pope_n victor_n the_o ii_o give_v direction_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n to_o take_v order_n with_o he_o they_o assemble_v at_o tower_n anno_o 1056._o there_o be_v hildebrand_n and_o the_o priest_n legate_n berengarius_fw-la elude_v the_o council_n rather_o than_o open_v his_o mind_n for_o he_o profess_v general_o that_o he_o follow_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v say_v he_o as_o the_o scripture_n father_n and_o primitive_a church_n have_v teach_v and_o more_o particular_o he_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n become_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o as_o in_o a_o shadow_n but_o true_o pope_n nicolaus_n ii_o hearing_n that_o berengarius_fw-la be_v honour_v of_o many_o summon_v he_o again_o to_o a_o synod_n at_o rome_n anno_fw-la 1059._o and_o there_o as_o baron_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1059._o say_v without_o any_o disputation_n he_o condemn_v his_o own_o error_n but_o vsser_n de_fw-fr success_n eccles_n c._n 8._o have_v mark_v that_o sigon_n de_fw-fr reg_fw-la ital._n lib._n 9_o when_o berengarius_fw-la with_o many_o argument_n defend_v that_o the_o sacrament_n to_o speak_v proper_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o cardinal_n albericus_n who_o be_v nominate_v to_o dispute_v against_o he_o can_v not_o by_o voice_n resist_v he_o and_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o will_v yield_v to_o the_o other_o albericus_n seek_v the_o space_n of_o seven_o day_n to_o answer_v in_o writing_n as_o also_o it_o be_v remember_v by_o leo_n ostien_n in_o chron._n cassin_n lib._n 3._o and_o at_o last_o when_o disputation_n can_v not_o prevail_v against_o he_o it_o be_v give_v he_o in_o option_n whether_o he_o will_v recant_v or_o burn_v the_o old_a man_n for_o fear_v of_o death_n as_o pa._n masson_n annal._n franco_n lib._n 3._o speak_v make_v that_o beastly_a recantation_n a_o perpetual_a argument_n of_o his_o dastardly_a courage_n and_o of_o the_o brutish_a ignorance_n of_o that_o council_n which_o be_v pen_v by_o cardinal_n humbert_n and_o be_v register_v by_o gratian._n the_o consecr_n do_v 2._o ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la nevertheless_o the_o word_n of_o the_o recantation_n be_v as_o far_o from_o romish_a transubstatiation_n as_o white_a from_o black_a these_o be_v the_o word_n so_o far_o as_o they_o concern_v our_o present_a purpose_n faithful_o translate_v ay_o berengarius_fw-la do_v consent_n unto_o the_o apostolic_a and_o roman_a see_v and_o with_o my_o mouth_n and_o heart_n confess_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o be_v lay_v on_o the_o altar_n after_o the_o consecration_n be_v not_o only_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o sensible_o not_o only_o in_o sacrament_n but_o in_o truth_n be_v handle_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n break_v and_o chew_v with_o the_o hand_n and_o tooth_n of_o the_o faithful_a etc._n etc._n john_n semeca_n the_o glossator_fw-la of_o the_o decree_n express_o condemn_v the_o word_n of_o this_o recantation_n and_o say_v if_o thou_o understand_v not_o the_o word_n of_o berengarius_fw-la sound_o thou_o shall_v fall_v into_o a_o great_a heresy_n than_o he_o do_v for_o we_o break_v not_o christ_n body_n into_o piece_n nisi_fw-la in_o speciebus_fw-la lombard_n li._n 4._o dist_n 12._o e._n 1._o say_v not_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n but_o in_o a_o sacrament_n that_o be_v in_o specie_fw-la and_o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr council_n lib._n 2._o c._n 1._o say_v in_o signo_fw-la &_o none_o in_o se_fw-la when_o they_o say_v understand_v sound_o they_o understand_v clean_o against_o the_o text_n for_o if_o by_o species_n and_o sign_n they_o understand_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v certain_o mean_a and_o speak_v they_o deceive_v the_o world_n see_v whiteness_n and_o such_o other_o quality_n can_v never_o be_v break_v without_o some_o substance_n neither_o be_v these_o quality_n the_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n wherefore_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v after_o the_o blessing_n and_o when_o they_o condemn_v the_o confession_n of_o berengarius_fw-la and_o call_v it_o his_o word_n they_o consider_v not_o that_o they_o condemn_v their_o pope_n nicolaus_n and_o their_o council_n of_o one_o hundred_o and_o fourteen_o bishop_n prescribe_v it_o and_o ordain_v berengarius_fw-la to_o subscribe_v it_o and_o which_o send_v that_o confession_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n germany_n and_o france_n as_o catholic_a it_o be_v certain_a that_o berengarius_fw-la return_v home_n return_v also_o to_o his_o former_a doctrine_n and_o write_v in_o defence_n of_o it_o so_o that_o as_o blondus_n say_v he_o be_v summon_v again_o by_o pope_n gregory_n the_o vii_o anno_o 1079._o and_o then_o subscibe_v another_o recantation_n and_o a_o act_n be_v make_v that_o thenceforth_o none_o may_v dispute_v nor_o teach_v another_o concern_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n except_o for_o bring_v unto_o the_o faith_n they_o that_o be_v go_v astray_o it_o seem_v that_o as_o yet_o gregory_n be_v not_o resolve_v of_o his_o doubt_n bercold_v a_o priest_n of_o constance_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1083._o say_v albeit_o berengarius_fw-la abjure_v that_o heresy_n in_o face_n of_o synod_n yet_o he_o cease_v not_o to_o return_v unto_o his_o vomit_n some_o have_v write_v that_o berengarius_fw-la deny_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n but_o say_v ja._n usser_n in_o so_o many_o synod_n hold_v against_o he_o we_o never_o find_v any_o such_o thing_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n and_o unto_o the_o say_v usser_v it_o appear_v that_o who_o in_o those_o day_n be_v charge_v to_o deny_v the_o baptism_n of_o child_n do_v hold_v no_o more_o but_o this_o baptism_n confer_v not_o grace_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la so_o berengarius_fw-la die_v hold_v his_o first_o doctrine_n at_o tower_n in_o the_o isle_n of_o st._n cosina_fw-la and_o be_v bury_v in_o s._n martin_n where_o his_o tomb_n be_v rear_v and_o hildebert_n bishop_n of_o caenoman_n and_o then_o of_o tower_n make_v his_o epitaph_n which_o be_v in_o guil._n malmesbu_n de_fw-fr gest_n anglo_n lib._n 3._o and_o this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o it_o quem_fw-la modò_fw-la miratur_fw-la semper_fw-la mirabitur_fw-la orbis_n ille_fw-la berengarius_fw-la non_fw-la obiturus_fw-la
precedent_n or_o record_v of_o it_o in_o writing_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o apostle_n leave_v liberty_n unto_o every_o man_n at_o his_o own_o discretion_n without_o fear_n compulsion_n or_o constraint_n to_o addict_v himself_o unto_o what_o seem_v good_a and_o commendable_a we_o know_v for_o certain_a that_o this_o diversity_n of_o fast_v be_v rife_a throughout_o the_o world_n so_o far_o socrates_n before_o he_o theodoret_n on_o rom._n 14._o at_o the_o word_n let_v every_o one_o abound_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n say_v he_o speak_v not_o general_o but_o of_o meat_n only_o he_o give_v liberty_n unto_o every_o one_o for_o this_o custom_n continue_v unto_o this_o day_n in_o the_o church_n that_o one_o abstain_v and_o another_o eat_v any_o meat_n without_o scruple_n neither_o do_v the_o one_o condemn_v the_o other_o but_o this_o law_n of_o concord_n make_v they_o the_o more_o famous_a and_o laudable_a and_o eusebius_n hist_n li._n 5._o c._n 26._o repeat_v the_o epistle_n of_o iraenaeus_fw-la unto_o victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v neither_o be_v this_o difference_n of_o the_o day_n only_o but_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o fast_v some_o think_v they_o shall_v fast_v one_o day_n some_o two_o some_o more_o some_o forty_o and_o tell_v the_o hour_n of_o the_o night_n and_o day_n neither_o begin_v this_o variety_n in_o our_o time_n but_o long_o before_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o variety_n they_o hold_v unity_n one_o with_o another_o and_o as_o yet_o we_o retain_v it_o for_o this_o variety_n of_o fast_v commend_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n they_o who_o before_o soter_n be_v bishop_n of_o that_o see_v i_o mean_v anicetus_n pius_n higin_n telesphorus_n and_o xistus_fw-la do_v not_o observe_v it_o themselves_o nor_o do_v they_o publish_v any_o such_o precedent_n unto_o posterity_n and_o though_o they_o keep_v not_o that_o custom_n they_o hold_v unity_n with_o other_o who_o come_v unto_o they_o from_o other_o church_n etc._n etc._n indeed_o caranza_n in_o summ._n council_n have_v a_o decree_n as_o of_o telesphorus_n to_o wit_n we_o decree_v that_o seven_o full_a week_n before_o easter_n all_o clerk_n that_o be_v who_o be_v call_v into_o the_o lot_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v fast_o from_o flesh_n because_o as_o the_o life_n of_o clerk_n shall_v be_v different_a from_o the_o conversation_n of_o lay_v man_n so_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o difference_n in_o their_o fast_n observe_v the_o time_n be_v here_o appoint_v seven_o full_a week_n and_o it_o be_v enjoin_v unto_o clerk_n only_o nor_o be_v any_o thing_n forbid_v but_o flesh_n but_o how_o can_v this_o decree_n stand_v with_o the_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n or_o with_o the_o practice_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o day_n of_o socrates_n in_o the_o first_o council_n at_o orleans_n and_o that_o be_v about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicen_n and_o a_o national_a be_v such_o a_o act_n concern_v priest_n only_a augustine_n in_o epist_n 86._o say_v if_o you_o ask_v my_o opinion_n in_o this_o i_o resolve_v it_o in_o my_o mind_n do_v see_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n fast_v be_v command_v but_o upon_o what_o day_n we_o shall_v fast_o or_o not_o fast_o i_o do_v not_o see_v it_o define_v by_o precept_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o his_o apostle_n so_o he_o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr bon_fw-fr oper_n li._n 2._o c._n 15._o say_v it_o seem_v a_o wondrous_a difference_n be_v among_o the_o ancient_n in_o keep_v of_o lent_n nevertheless_o pope_n gregory_n have_v a_o precedent_n for_o eusebius_n hist_n li._n 5._o c._n 16._o say_v montanus_n condemn_v marriage_n and_o eat_v of_o flesh_n and_o also_o he_o keep_v three_o fast_n yearly_a whereof_o one_o be_v two_o week_n before_o easter_n it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v mark_v that_o whatsoever_o necessity_n be_v lay_v on_o keep_v of_o lent_n yet_o a_o man_n may_v have_v a_o dispensation_n from_o his_o priest_n for_o a_o small_a sum_n of_o money_n as_o the_o papal_z chancelary_a direct_v 10._o peter_n damian_n bishop_n of_o oscia_n write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr correctione_n episcopi_fw-la note_v some_o fruit_n of_o bishop_n be_v note_v &_o papae_fw-la it_o be_v in_o catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 12._o there_o he_o sharp_o rebuke_n the_o arrogance_n of_o bishop_n which_o will_v live_v as_o they_o listen_v without_o subjection_n unto_o censure_n albeit_o the_o prophet_n david_n do_v not_o spurn_v at_o the_o admonition_n of_o the_o prophet_n nathan_n and_o samuel_n though_o suffer_v wrong_a do_v not_o refuse_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n and_o albeit_o peter_n be_v endow_v with_o such_o grace_n yet_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o censure_n of_o other_o act._n 1._o and_o when_o he_o be_v rebuke_v by_o paul_n he_o do_v not_o quarrel_n but_o take_v it_o in_o good_a part_n because_o he_o well_o understand_v it_o be_v not_o of_o malice_n but_o in_o love_n but_o say_v he_o now_o they_o say_v i_o be_o a_o bishop_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v rebuke_v by_o my_o sheep_n they_o must_v be_v silent_a whatsoever_o be_v my_o carriage_n etc._n etc._n he_o conclude_v therefore_o let_v this_o pernicious_a custom_n be_v abolish_v by_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n away_o with_o this_o deceitful_a subterfuge_n that_o he_o who_o pretend_v so_o malepert_a arrogancy_n may_v not_o enjoy_v his_o sin_n with_o immunity_n in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o udalrik_n bishop_n of_o firma_n he_o reprove_v the_o pope_n that_o they_o do_v contrary_a unto_o that_o which_o they_o be_v command_v to_o teach_v for_o they_o shall_v exhort_v all_o man_n unto_o patience_n and_o toleration_n of_o injury_n and_o forbid_v vindictive_a contention_n but_o now_o say_v he_o what_o bishop_n shall_v exhort_v other_o to_o do_v they_o themselves_o will_v not_o do_v christ_n command_v to_o forgive_v thy_o brother_n seventy_o time_n in_o a_o day_n the_o king_n may_v use_v the_o temporal_a sword_n but_o a_o priest_n shall_v use_v only_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v god_n word_n if_o for_o maintain_v the_o faith_n priest_n shall_v not_o carry_v iron_n weapon_n how_o then_o see_v we_o army_n of_o they_o rise_v against_o one_o another_o for_o earthly_a thing_n but_o so_o it_o be_v fulfil_v what_o the_o apostle_n write_v when_o they_o preach_v to_o other_o themselves_o be_v find_v to_o be_v reprobate_n 11._o about_o the_o year_n 1072._o at_o nantes_n in_o low_a bretanny_n a_o letter_n be_v time_n opposition_n against_o gregory_n vii_o and_o description_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n present_v unto_o a_o clerk_n as_o direct_v from_o hell_n in_o it_o satan_n and_o all_o that_o fry_n give_v thanks_o unto_o all_o churchman_n because_o they_o be_v not_o deficient_a unto_o his_o and_o their_o pleasure_n and_o by_o negligence_n of_o preach_v they_o send_v so_o many_o soul_n unto_o hell_n as_o no_o age_n precede_v have_v see_v so_o many_o mat._n parisi_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1072._o cardinal_n benno_n testify_v that_o none_o of_o hildebrand_n cardinal_n will_v at_o first_o subscribe_v the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o emperor_n henry_n and_o he_o have_v a_o large_a catalogue_n of_o cardinal_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n who_o leave_v the_o pope_n and_o will_v never_o return_v unto_o he_o so_o that_o as_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v divide_v the_o one_o party_n pretend_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o accuse_v they_o and_o their_o pope_n that_o he_o and_o they_o teach_v and_o do_v contraray_v unto_o the_o scripture_n and_o primitive_a church_n he_o add_v that_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n turban_n have_v presume_v to_o violate_v the_o decree_n of_o chalcedon_n namely_o in_o baptise_v and_o communicate_v without_o the_o church_n but_o say_v he_o as_o eusebius_n alone_o defend_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n against_o liberius_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o by_o his_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o he_o do_v bind_v he_o with_o the_o key_n so_o &_o much_o more_o be_v hildebrand_n persevere_v in_o this_o error_n condemn_v unto_o hell_n by_o the_o depart_n of_o so_o many_o father_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o who_o accurse_v his_o heresy_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v then_o he_o have_v a_o large_a description_n of_o hildebrand_n and_o his_o disciple_n say_v let_v the_o prophet_n be_v astonish_v at_o the_o voice_n of_o peter_n and_o his_o disciple_n they_o be_v man_n in_o face_n and_o scorpion_n in_o tail_n wolf_n lurk_v in_o sheepskin_n kill_v body_n and_o dedestroy_v soul_n their_o religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o treachery_n and_o covetousness_n they_o haunt_v widow_n and_o lead_v woman_n captive_n who_o be_v load_v with_o sin_n by_o occasion_n of_o time_n they_o give_v heed_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n which_o their_o master_n hildebrand_n have_v receive_v from_o his_o master_n theophylact_v or_o pope_n benedict_n iu._n laurence_n bishop_n of_o
book_n castigatio_fw-la in_o ecclesiasticum_fw-la ordinem_fw-la he_o distinguish_v churchman_n into_o bishop_n or_o priest_n as_o he_o speak_v and_o the_o clerk_n of_o the_o first_o sort_n he_o expound_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o 1_o tim._n and_o he_o expound_v the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o clerk_n and_o from_o that_o chapter_n he_o convince_v they_o both_o he_o name_v no_o other_o degree_n of_o churchman_n but_o certain_o he_o have_v name_v they_o if_o any_o other_o have_v be_v among_o they_o because_o he_o speak_v so_o distinct_o of_o the_o several_a rank_n of_o man_n both_o in_o state_n and_o church_n he_o call_v the_o first_o sort_n oft_a sacerdotes_fw-la simple_o but_o never_o episcopos_fw-la unless_o he_o add_v sive_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la the_o book_n be_v in_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la de_fw-fr la_fw-fr bigne_fw-fr we_o may_v conclude_v then_o the_o ancient_a britan_n have_v no_o churchman_n above_o the_o degree_n of_o priesthood_n now_o if_o that_o be_v add_v which_o follow_v in_o this_o chapter_n concern_v ireland_n we_o have_v find_v four_o national_a church_n that_o have_v be_v govern_v without_o prelate_n to_o wit_n the_o african_a ancient_a britan_n the_o scot_n and_o irish_a some_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 500_o year_n yea_o until_o the_o britan_n be_v subdue_v by_o the_o english_a and_o some_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 1000_o or_o 1100._o year_n and_o we_o have_v find_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church-council_n consist_v partly_o of_o ruler_n who_o be_v not_o teacher_n beside_o that_o ambrose_n and_o other_o testify_v that_o such_o be_v every_o where_n yea_o and_o in_o rome_n it_o be_v most_o probable_a that_o the_o first_o teacher_n rome_n of_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n i_o say_v probable_a because_o history_n be_v not_o clear_a in_o this_o point_n epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 27._o say_v peter_n and_o paul_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n there_o but_o whether_o linus_n and_o cletus_n be_v bishop_n there_o while_o the_o apostle_n be_v alive_a i_o can_v well_o say_v it_o may_v be_v say_v he_o because_o the_o apostle_n go_v into_o other_o nation_n to_o preach_v and_o rome_n can_v not_o be_v without_o a_o bishop_n for_o paul_n go_v into_o spain_n and_o peter_n do_v oft_o visit_v pontus_n and_o bythinia_n and_o possible_o when_o clemens_n have_v refuse_v i_o can_v say_v it_o certain_o and_o linus_n and_o cletus_n be_v dead_a he_o be_v compel_v to_o take_v the_o bishopric_n so_o conjunctuary_o write_v epiphanius_n jerome_n in_o catalogue_n scriptor_n say_v clemens_n be_v the_o four_o bishop_n and_o he_o name_v peter_n but_o not_o paul_n linus_n and_o cletus_n but_o say_v he_o many_o latin_n say_v clemens_n be_v next_o unto_o peter_n theodoret_n on_o 1_o tim._n 4._o say_v they_o say_v linus_n do_v succeed_v unto_o great_a peter_n io._n naucler_n in_o vol._n 2._o generate_v 3._o say_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 70._o linus_n succeed_v unto_o bless_a peter_n although_o bless_a peter_n have_v ordain_v that_o clemens_n shall_v succeed_v but_o clemens_n consider_v that_o it_o be_v a_o ill_a example_n that_o one_o shall_v succeed_v his_o successor_n he_o renounce_v the_o papacy_n and_o linus_n be_v choose_v than_o cletus_n and_o fourthly_a clemens_n rufinus_n in_o praefa_fw-la before_o clemen_n rocognit_fw-la say_v some_o do_v ask_v see_v linus_n and_o cletus_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o clemens_n how_o can_v clemens_n write_v unto_o james_n say_v that_o peter_n have_v give_v unto_o he_o the_o chair_n of_o teach_v we_o have_v this_o reason_n of_o it_o linus_n and_o cletus_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o clemens_n but_o while_o peter_n be_v alive_a they_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o bishopric_n and_o peter_n fulfil_v the_o office_n of_o apostleship_n dion_n petavius_n a_o jesuit_n in_o rationa_n par_fw-fr 1._o lib._n 5._o cap._n 5._o say_v when_o peter_n be_v kill_v by_o nero_n linus_n govern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o ancient_a writer_n affirm_v and_o they_o assign_v unto_o he_o eleven_o year_n two_o month_n and_o some_o day_n so_o that_o he_o die_v in_o the_o year_n 78._o unto_o he_o succeed_v cletus_n who_o irenaeus_n call_v anacletus_fw-la and_o he_o sit_v twelve_o year_n and_o seven_o month_n and_o suffer_v martyrdom_n ann_n 91._o and_o clemens_n be_v his_o successor_n the_o jesuit_n io._n hart_n in_o collog_n cum_fw-la io._n reynold_n c._n 6._o se_fw-la 4._o affirm_v that_o peter_n before_o his_o death_n ordain_v only_o clemens_n to_o be_v his_o successor_n other_o have_v other_o opinion_n as_o it_o be_v in_o collog_n ca._n cit_fw-la se_fw-la 3._o therefore_o i_o say_v history_n be_v uncertain_a in_o this_o point_n albeit_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o it_o but_o it_o be_v most_o probable_a that_o clemens_n linus_n cletus_n and_o anacletus_fw-la be_v sympresbyter_n and_o the_o writer_n in_o follow_a age_n speak_v conformable_a to_o their_o own_o practice_n do_v name_n some_o one_o and_o some_o another_o but_o it_o be_v more_o certain_a that_o other_o be_v the_o first_o preacher_n of_o equal_a authority_n at_o rome_n then_o that_o any_o of_o these_o four_o be_v the_o first_o preacher_n there_o that_o peter_n or_o paul_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v not_o probable_a because_o they_o be_v apostle_n and_o do_v the_o work_n of_o their_o apostleship_n and_o the_o scripture_n show_v their_o diligence_n from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o other_o preacher_n be_v at_o rome_n who_o paul_n salute_v rom._n 16._o aquila_n epenaetus_n andronicus_n junias_n etc._n etc._n these_o he_o call_v of_o note_n among_o the_o apostle_n and_o his_o fellow-labourer_n in_o the_o lord_n sedulius_n say_v who_o he_o call_v fellow-labourer_n he_o mean_v in_o the_o work_n of_o teach_v and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o reason_n think_v that_o the_o roman_n believe_v by_o their_o teach_n ambrose_n or_o whoever_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n say_v those_o be_v not_o idle_a at_o rome_n for_o they_o be_v zealous_a in_o devotion_n and_o it_o be_v understand_v that_o all_o those_o who_o paul_n salute_v come_v for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o say_v that_o not_o only_o he_o but_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n give_v they_o thanks_o and_o he_o admonish_v the_o roman_n to_o obey_v they_o in_o 2_o tim._n 4._o paul_n mention_v linus_n to_o have_v be_v at_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n and_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n he_o name_v other_o before_o he_o to_o wit_n eubulus_n and_o pudens_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o linus_n have_v be_v their_o prelate_n wherefore_o there_o be_v a_o church_n at_o rome_n before_o peter_n or_o paul_n come_v thither_o as_o paul_n write_v unto_o they_o as_o a_o constitute_v church_n and_o testify_v that_o their_o faith_n be_v speak_v of_o throughout_o the_o world_n c._n 1._o 8._o and_o their_o obedience_n be_v come_v abroad_o unto_o all_o man_n it_o be_v certain_a also_o that_o they_o have_v many_o preacher_n and_o other_o officer_n to_o who_o he_o direct_v chap._n 12_o 6_o 7_o 8._o nor_o can_v any_o man_n prove_v that_o those_o preacher_n have_v superiority_n one_o over_o another_o therefore_o it_o deserve_v consideration_n whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o once_o constitute_v with_o purity_n of_o teacher_n and_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v not_o of_o the_o like_a constitution_n see_v and_o consider_v act_n 13._o 1._o and_o many_o elder_n or_o bishop_n be_v at_o ephesus_n acts._n 20._o 17_o 28._o and_o so_o at_o thessalonica_n 1_o thess_n 5._o 12._o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o revel_n 2._o will_v not_o prove_v any_o imparity_n see_v it_o be_v attribute_v unto_o all_o priest_n general_o mat._n 2._o 7._o and_o the_o the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v too_o weak_a a_o foundation_n for_o such_o a_o building_n see_v it_o impli_v not_o always_o a_o singularity_n but_o often_o a_o indefinite_a thing_n and_o answer_v unto_o our_o particle_n a_o or_o an_z often_o than_o unto_o the_o particle_n the_o and_o so_o it_o may_v well_o be_v translate_v there_o to_o a_o angel_n see_v many_o bishop_n be_v at_o ephesus_n and_o this_o put_v the_o question_n out_o of_o all_o doubt_n to_o i_o that_o as_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o first_o and_o main_a foundation_n command_v to_o ordain_v elder_n or_o bishop_n these_o be_v one_o in_o scripture-language_n in_o every_o church_n act_v 14._o 23._o or_o in_o every_o town_n tit._n 1._o 5._o or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v clemens_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la corinth_n so_o for_o practice_n and_o history_n it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o when_o the_o constant_a moderator_n be_v appoint_v under_o the_o name_n of_o
a_o bishop_n that_o any_o bishop_n so_o call_v have_v any_o jurisdiction_n without_o or_o large_a than_o one_o town_n within_o the_o space_n of_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n rhegium_n a_o little_a town_n have_v a_o bishop_n of_o as_o great_a power_n within_o his_o town_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v within_o his_o town_n as_o witness_v jerom_n ad_fw-la evangr_n and_o neither_o of_o they_o have_v power_n in_o the_o other_o town_n and_o therefore_o if_o man_n will_v leave_v the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n and_o follow_v the_o first_o declination_n of_o antiquity_n every_o town_n shall_v have_v its_o own_o bishop_n we_o have_v read_v of_o more_o bishop_n in_o one_o town_n but_o for_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n two_o town_n be_v not_o under_o one_o bishop_n or_o who_o will_v show_v it_o erit_fw-la mihi_fw-la magnus_fw-la apollo_n object_n not_o a_o canon_n of_o nice_a i_o crave_v a_o testimony_n within_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n and_o if_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o that_o canon_n be_v take_v in_o the_o apostle_n sense_n act_v 15._o 7._o for_o a_o good_a while_n ago_o certain_o it_o carry_v not_o a_o long_a space_n of_o time_n in_o sum_n every_o town_n shall_v have_v their_o own_o church-council_n whether_o the_o praeses_fw-la be_v per_fw-la vice_n monthly_o or_o quarterly_a or_o yearly_a or_o ad_fw-la vitam_fw-la or_o ad_fw-la culpam_fw-la and_o so_o that_o the_o church-council_n may_v act_v without_o the_o praeses_fw-la be_v necessary_o or_o wilful_o absent_a but_o not_o he_o without_o his_o colleague_n as_o cyprian_n testify_v of_o himself_o in_o epist_n 10._o ad_fw-la presbyt_fw-la &_o diacon_n edit_fw-la basil_n ann_n 1521._o let_v this_o be_v understand_v without_o the_o prejudice_n of_o large_a synod_n which_o antiquity_n do_v ever_o acknowledge_v now_o because_o i_o will_v join_v all_o this_o purpose_n together_o for_o the_o more_o clear_n of_o it_o i_o add_v three_o particular_n first_o of_o the_o ground_n and_o platform_n of_o degree_n the_o first_o pattern_n of_o episcopal_a degree_n bishop_n second_o of_o the_o election_n and_o consecration_n of_o they_o three_o of_o the_o rise_n and_o growth_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n concern_v the_o first_o lombard_n li._n 4._o di._n 24._o §_o 9_o teach_v thus_o the_o canon_n judge_v excellent_o that_o only_o two_o order_n be_v holy_a deacon_n and_o priest_n for_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v only_o these_o so_o far_o as_o we_o read_v and_o we_o have_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o apostle_n concern_v they_o only_o for_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v bishop_n and_o elder_n in_o every_o city_n we_o read_v also_o that_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v levites_n of_o who_o the_o chief_a be_v steven_n but_o afterward_o the_o church_n ordain_v subdeacon_n and_o aco_fw-it luthi_fw-mi and_o in_o se_fw-la 11._o he_o say_v the_o order_n of_o bishop_n be_v fourfold_a to_o wit_n patriarch_n arch-bishop_n metropolitan_o and_o bishop_n this_o distinction_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v bring_v from_o the_o heathen_n who_o call_v their_o priest_n some_o flamen_v simple_o other_o archy-flamines_a and_o other_o proto-flamines_a for_o the_o heathen_n call_v their_o priest_n flamen_v etc._n etc._n lombard_n be_v a_o bishop_n and_o know_v antiquity_n if_o he_o can_v have_v say_v more_o for_o the_o credit_n of_o his_o order_n he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v deficient_a for_o the_o second_o pope_n vergil_n de_fw-fr inven_n rer_n li._n 4._o cap._n 6._o say_v of_o old_a in_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v no_o consecration_n their_o consecration_n other_o ceremony_n but_o the_o people_n which_o for_o that_o end_n as_o cyprian_n witness_v not_o in_o one_o place_n only_o especial_o in_o epist_n 4._o ad_fw-la felic_n presby_n be_v always_o present_a at_o the_o election_n of_o bishop_n do_v pray_v and_o the_o presbyter_n lay_v on_o their_o hand_n this_o be_v the_o consecration_n use_v at_o first_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o father_n lest_o any_o be_v mistake_v the_o priestly_a order_n can_v no_o way_n be_v say_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n unless_o it_o be_v understand_v among_o the_o italian_n only_o etc._n etc._n in_o c._n 10._o he_o say_v the_o power_n of_o choose_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n from_o the_o beginning_n do_v belong_v unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o then_o unto_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o city_n yet_o not_o without_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o neghbor_a bishop_n cyprian_n witness_v not_o in_o one_o place_n only_o especial_o in_o epist_n 4._o ad_fw-la felic_n that_o this_o custom_n continue_v a_o long_a time_n and_o there_o he_o discourse_v of_o this_o clear_o but_o see_v that_o law_n be_v long_o since_o out_o of_o date_n it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o repeat_v his_o word_n when_o a_o bishop_n be_v choose_v so_o the_o other_z bishop_n do_v initiate_v he_o and_o this_o be_v do_v by_o a_o decree_n of_o the_o synod_n at_o nice_a where_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v enter_v if_o possible_a by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n but_o if_o that_o can_v hardly_o be_v at_o least_o by_o three_o and_o not_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a but_o now_o both_o those_o belong_v unto_o the_o roman_a high_a priest_n for_o he_o creat_v a_o bishop_n and_o initiate_v he_o or_o according_a to_o the_o nicen_n order_n he_o command_v he_o to_o be_v initiate_v that_o be_v consecrate_v but_o afterward_o the_o creation_n of_o bishop_n be_v turn_v into_o another_o form_n by_o boniface_n the_o three_o he_o ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v choose_v by_o the_o people_n and_o society_n of_o priest_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o place_n not_o gainsaying_n and_o the_o roman_a high_a priest_n consent_v with_o these_o word_n volumus_fw-la &_o jubemus_fw-la but_o this_o decree_n as_o too_o good_a go_v soon_o out_o of_o use_n all_o thing_n fall_v into_o worse_a then_o they_o begin_v to_o advise_v with_o the_o emperor_n but_o lewes_n son_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a renounce_v unto_o the_o high_a priest_n paschalis_n the_o right_a which_o hadrian_n have_v give_v unto_o the_o father_n charles_n but_o now_o many_o prince_n gripe_v fast_o to_o this_o yea_o not_o only_o declare_v and_o call_v bishop_n as_o they_o please_v without_o the_o suffrage_n of_o priest_n and_o people_n but_o by_o their_o only_a seal_n give_v inferior_a benefice_n which_o simplicius_n and_o gregory_n do_v altogether_o forbid_v so_o far_o he_o in_o these_o day_n some_o plead_v much_o for_o antiquity_n in_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o their_o pretence_n go_v not_o high_a than_o the_o corrupt_a time_n it_o may_v be_v true_o think_v if_o some_o question_n much_o stand_v upon_o now_o have_v be_v ask_v of_o cyprian_a he_o have_v answer_v i_o know_v not_o as_o what_o difference_n between_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o minister_n and_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n what_o be_v a_o presentation_n what_o be_v a_o patent_n what_o difference_n between_o ordination_n institution_n and_o collation_n what_o be_v a_o chapel_n where_o minister_n be_v ordain_v and_o not_o one_o of_o his_o flock_n present_a and_o many_o such_o other_o as_o to_o the_o rise_n and_o growth_n of_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n pe._n soave_fw-it in_fw-it hist_o council_n triden_n li._n 4._o show_v it_o full_o say_v this_o place_n require_v say_v he_o to_o show_v the_o original_n of_o this_o jurisdiction_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v by_o what_o degree_n it_o have_v come_v unto_o this_o power_n which_o be_v envy_v by_o prince_n and_o fear_v by_o all_o nation_n when_o christ_n do_v commit_v unto_o the_o apostle_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o give_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o believer_n a_o great_a commandment_n that_o they_o shall_v love_v one_o another_o and_o forgive_v wrong_n mutual_o command_v each_o one_o to_o mediate_v betwixt_o dissent_v brethren_n and_o to_o compose_v jar_n and_o as_o the_o last_o and_o high_a remedy_n commend_v that_o charge_n unto_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n with_o this_o promise_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v bind_v or_o loose_v in_o heaven_n what_o they_o shall_v bind_v or_o loose_v on_o earth_n and_o the_o father_n will_v give_v what_o they_o with_o mutual_a consent_n do_v crave_v to_o wit_n this_o pious_a duty_n of_o charity_n in_o procure_v satisfaction_n unto_o the_o injure_a party_n and_o pardon_v unto_o the_o offender_n be_v the_o continual_a work_n and_o exercise_v of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o according_a to_o this_o commandment_n saint_n paul_n exhort_v that_o when_o civil_a question_n arise_v betwixt_o brethren_n they_o shall_v not_o go_v to_o the_o bench_n of_o infidel_n but_o suffer_v their_o controversy_n to_o be_v judge_v by_o wise_a man_n choose_v among_o themselves_o this_o have_v a_o form_n of_o civil_a judicatory_a as_o the_o
intend_v the_o action_n against_o a_o laic_a and_o on_o the_o account_n of_o this_o court_n they_o be_v most_o attentive_a unto_o their_o own_o gain_n and_o leave_v nothing_o unto_o the_o secular_o they_o usurp_v upon_o all_o man_n as_o under_o their_o reach_n or_o if_o any_o escape_n this_o snare_n there_o remain_v one_o jin_o to_o catch_v they_o to_o wit_n a_o general_a rule_n for_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n every_o action_n belong_v unto_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n if_o the_o magistrate_n will_v not_o do_v right_a or_o if_o he_o delay_v to_o do_v it_o and_o if_o the_o pretension_n of_o the_o clergy_n have_v hold_v within_o these_o bound_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o christian_a republic_n have_v not_o yet_o be_v undo_v for_o it_o have_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o nation_n and_o prince_n when_o they_o tolerable_o exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o equity_n to_o have_v reduce_v they_o by_o law_n into_o some_o tolerable_a measure_n as_o in_o time_n of_o extreme_a necessity_n it_o have_v be_v do_v but_o he_o who_o have_v lay_v the_o yoke_n upon_o christian_n even_o he_o have_v take_v away_o all_o way_n of_o shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n for_o after_o the_o year_n 1050._o when_v all_o the_o action_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v make_v proper_a unto_o the_o bishop_n court_n and_o so_o many_o action_n of_o laic_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o spirituality_n and_o almost_o all_o other_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o mix_a court_n do_v some_o way_n belong_v unto_o that_o court_n and_o last_o they_o have_v make_v secular_a power_n subject_n unto_o they_o under_o colour_n of_o delay_v right_o at_o last_o they_o be_v come_v so_o far_o as_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n have_v so_o large_a and_o wide_a power_n of_o judge_v neither_o by_o connivance_n nor_o grant_v of_o prince_n nor_o by_o the_o will_n of_o the_o people_n nor_o by_o ancient_a custom_n but_o it_o be_v the_o very_a property_n of_o episcopal_a dignity_n and_o essential_a unto_o it_o and_o gift_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o albeit_o there_o be_v extant_a many_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o book_n of_o theodosius_n and_o justinian_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o lewes_n the_o godly_a and_o other_o prince_n after_o they_o both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a after_o what_o manner_n at_o what_o time_n and_o by_o who_o that_o power_n be_v grant_v and_o all_o history_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a do_v agree_v in_o the_o report_n of_o these_o grant_n and_o custom_n and_o in_o their_o cause_n and_o reason_n nevertheless_o this_o so_o manifest_a a_o truth_n can_v not_o hitherto_o have_v place_n and_o be_v fall_v before_o a_o naked_a contrary_a and_o groundless_a assertion_n even_o so_o far_o that_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o canon-law_n have_v open_o declare_v they_o heretic_n who_o will_v not_o suffer_v themselves_o as_o blind_a man_n to_o be_v lead_v into_o the_o ditch_n nor_o do_v they_o contain_v themselves_o within_o these_o limit_n but_o they_o do_v also_o add_v that_o no_o magistrate_n not_o the_o prince_n himself_o may_v meddle_v with_o any_o of_o these_o action_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o the_o clergy_n see_v they_o be_v spiritual_a whereof_o laic_n be_v altogether_o incapable_a and_o nevertheless_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o so_o unknown_a but_o that_o even_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o error_n the_o learned_a and_o godly_a do_v oppose_v it_o and_o do_v convince_v both_o the_o part_n of_o this_o assertion_n of_o manifest_a falsehood_n first_o they_o maintain_v that_o the_o major_a laic_n be_v incapable_a of_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v absurd_a and_o impious_a see_v they_o be_v adopt_v by_o the_o heavenly_a father_n call_v the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o brethren_n of_o christ_n make_v partaker_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o worthy_a of_o divine_a grace_n of_o baptism_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n for_o what_o be_v spiritual_a thing_n if_o these_o be_v not_o and_o if_o there_o may_v be_v any_o other_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o question_n concern_v he_o which_o be_v partaker_n of_o these_o high_a and_o most_o excellent_a thing_n as_o if_o he_o be_v uncapable_a of_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o they_o say_v the_o minor_a be_v as_o false_a the_o proper_a cause_n of_o the_o bishop_n court_n be_v mere_o spiritual_a see_v fault_n and_o contract_n which_o belong_v unto_o this_o jurisdiction_n if_o we_o consider_v these_o quality_n that_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v unto_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v as_o far_o distant_a from_o they_o as_o heaven_n be_v from_o the_o earth_n but_o the_o opposition_n of_o the_o better_a part_n can_v not_o hinder_v the_o great_a and_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n concern_v the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v which_o christ_n give_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o concern_v the_o exhortation_n of_o st._n paul_n for_o compose_v difference_n among_o christian_n and_o not_o appear_v before_o infidel-judge_n by_o progress_n of_o time_n a_o temporal_a throne_n be_v set_v up_o by_o many_o degree_n more_o glorious_o than_o any_o now_o or_o that_o have_v be_v at_o any_o time_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o every_o civil_a government_n be_v another_o set_v up_o no_o way_n depend_v thereon_o so_o that_o they_o which_o at_o first_o do_v prescribe_v the_o form_n of_o that_o administration_n can_v not_o possible_o imagine_v such_o a_o idea_n of_o a_o republic_n neither_o be_v it_o my_o purpose_n to_o report_v how_o they_o be_v not_o content_a to_o have_v attain_v their_o aim_n in_o build_v a_o court_n independent_a any_o way_n from_o the_o civil_a government_n and_o have_v likewise_o attain_v another_o end_n unexpected_o and_o have_v make_v up_o a_o empire_n by_o a_o new_a and_o novelty_n mark_v a_o strange_a novelty_n strange_a opinion_n which_o in_o a_o moment_n of_o time_n have_v make_v wondrous_a progress_n now_o they_o ascribe_v unto_o the_o roman_a pope_n alone_o which_o so_o many_o bishop_n in_o the_o space_n of_o 1300._o year_n have_v be_v purchase_v for_o themselves_o by_o so_o many_o admire_a wile_n and_o they_o make_v the_o foundation_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n to_o be_v not_o as_o before_o in_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v but_o a_o power_n of_o feed_v and_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o they_o hold_v that_o all_o jurisdiction_n be_v give_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n unto_o the_o pope_n alone_o in_o these_o word_n feed_v my_o sheep_n i_o say_v i_o have_v not_o purpose_n to_o speak_v more_o of_o this_o etc._n etc._n so_o far_o in_o the_o history_n of_o that_o synod_n at_o trent_n here_o i_o add_v how_o the_o canon_n begin_v and_o how_o they_o be_v distinguish_v canon_n the_o original_n of_o canon_n into_o several_a sort_n ge._n cassander_n show_v this_o in_o consultat_fw-la artic._n de_fw-fr canonicis_fw-la say_v in_o ancient_a time_n a_o monastical_a life_n be_v private_a and_o distinct_a from_o all_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o at_o first_o they_o have_v need_n of_o a_o presbyter_n from_o some_o other_o place_n to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o thereafter_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o one_o of_o their_o order_n shall_v be_v ordain_v a_o presbyter_n by_o who_o ministry_n they_o do_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o the_o order_n of_o monk_n and_o clerk_n be_v altogether_o distinct_a for_o monkery_n as_o i_o say_v be_v the_o office_n not_o of_o a_o teacher_n but_o of_o a_o mourner_n but_o then_o religious_a man_n in_o imitation_n of_o the_o monastical_a life_n do_v also_o appoint_v college_n of_o presbyter_n and_o canon_n where_o clerk_n that_o be_v aim_v or_o appoint_v unto_o the_o ministry_n and_o priest_n that_o be_v already_o place_v in_o the_o ministry_n shall_v live_v according_a to_o a_o prescribe_a rule_n which_o albeit_o it_o be_v a_o little_a more_o free_a than_o the_o monkish_a yet_o be_v tie_v to_o certain_a canon_n hence_o that_o life_n be_v call_v canonical_a and_o they_o who_o profess_v it_o be_v call_v canon_n and_o the_o society_n or_o college_n be_v call_v a_o monastery_n which_o name_n continue_v in_o some_o most_o famous_a college_n and_o so_o in_o some_o ancient_a council_n be_v mention_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o monk_n and_o of_o clerk_n a_o bishop_n be_v governor_n of_o the_o one_o and_o a_o abbot_n of_o the_o other_o bless_a augustine_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a author_n of_o this_o institution_n who_o when_o he_o have_v gather_v a_o society_n of_o godly_a man_n to_o live_v without_o a_o town_n and_o apart_o from_o the_o multitude_n of_o man_n thereafter_o be_v make_v a_o bishop_n and_o he_o will_v have_v within_o his_o bishopric_n a_o monastery_n of_o clerk_n and_o presbyter_n with_o who_o he_o may_v live_v in_o a_o community_n some_o say_v urban_n i._o be_v the_o beginner_n of_o this_o
scripture_n so_o many_o as_o be_v predestinate_v unto_o life_n be_v they_o not_o call_v king_n and_o priest_n therefore_o what_o god_n have_v conjoin_v let_v no_o man_n put_v asunder_o but_o rather_o what_o divine_a authority_n have_v ordain_v man_n will_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o fulfil_v and_o they_o shall_v join_v in_o heart_n who_o be_v conjoin_v in_o ordinance_n let_v they_o cherish_v one_o another_o defend_v other_o mutual_o and_o bear_v one_o another_o burden_n the_o wise_a man_n say_v a_o brother_n aid_v a_o brother_n both_o shall_v be_v comfort_v but_o if_o they_o bite_v one_o another_o which_o god_n forbid_v both_o shall_v come_v into_o desolation_n let_v not_o my_o soul_n come_v into_o their_o counsel_n which_o say_v that_o either_o the_o peace_n and_o freedom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v hurtful_a unto_o the_o crown_n or_o the_o prosperity_n and_o exaltation_n of_o the_o crown_n be_v hurtful_a unto_o the_o church_n for_o god_n the_o author_n of_o they_o both_o have_v conjoin_v they_o not_o to_o destruction_n but_o to_o edification_n if_o you_o know_v this_o how_o long_o will_v you_o dissemble_v the_o common_a contumely_n and_o common_a injury_n be_v not_o rome_n as_o the_o apostolical_a seat_n so_o also_o the_o head_n of_o the_o empire_n therefore_o though_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o king_n to_o have_v a_o headless_a empire_n i_o know_v not_o what_o the_o wise_a man_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v advise_v you_o herein_o but_o though_o i_o speak_v imprudent_o i_o will_v not_o be_v silent_a in_o what_o i_o do_v judge_n the_o church_n of_o god_n from_o the_o beginning_n even_o till_o these_o time_n have_v be_v oft_o afflict_v and_o oft_o deliver_v it_o be_v her_o voice_n they_o have_v often_o afflict_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n but_o they_o can_v not_o prevail_v against_o i_o be_v sure_a o_o king_n that_o neither_o now_o will_v the_o lord_n leave_v the_o rod_n of_o the_o wicked_a upon_o the_o back_n of_o the_o righteous_a the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o shorten_v nor_o become_v unable_a to_o help_v at_o this_o time_n he_o will_v deliver_v his_o spouse_n which_o he_o have_v redeem_v by_o his_o blood_n endow_v with_o his_o spirit_n furnish_v with_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o nevertheless_o enrich_v with_o earthly_a thing_n he_o will_v deliver_v i_o say_v again_o he_o will_v deliver_v but_o if_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o another_o let_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o kingdom_n consider_v whether_o this_o be_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o advantage_n of_o the_o king_n certain_o not_o wherefore_o gird_v thy_o sword_n o_o most_o mighty_a and_o let_v caesar_n recover_v unto_o himself_o what_o be_v caesar_n and_o unto_o god_n what_o be_v god_n utrumque_fw-la interest_n caesaris_fw-la constat_fw-la undoubted_o both_o these_o appertain_v to_o caesar_n to_o maintain_v his_o own_o crown_n and_o to_o defend_v the_o church_n the_o one_o become_v the_o king_n and_o the_o other_o the_o advocate_n of_o the_o church_n the_o victory_n as_o we_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n the_o roman_n be_v more_o arrogant_a then_o potent_a for_o what_o do_v ever_o any_o great_a or_o mighty_a emperor_n or_o king_n presume_v so_o vile_a a_o thing_n both_o against_o crown_n and_o priesthood_n but_o this_o curse_a and_o tumultuous_a people_n which_o can_v measure_v their_o strength_n nor_o think_v on_o the_o end_n nor_o consider_v the_o event_n in_o their_o foolishness_n and_o fury_n dare_v attempt_v so_o great_a sacrilege_n the_o temerity_n of_o the_o multitude_n can_v stand_v for_o a_o moment_n before_o the_o king_n face_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v not_o here_o add_v observation_n bellarmin_n de_fw-fr ro._n pont._n l._n 2._o c._n 31._o christ_n the_o original_n of_o the_o title_n ●icar_n of_o christ_n allege_v that_o bernard_n do_v first_o give_v unto_o the_o pope_n the_o title_n vicar_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o begin_n so_o but_o the_o cardinal_n mistake_v it_o bernard_n be_v not_o the_o first_o if_o platina_n do_v true_o report_v the_o word_n of_o gregory_n vii_o he_o use_v this_o title_n before_o he_o and_o according_a to_o the_o language_n of_o the_o court_n at_o that_o time_n bernard_n give_v this_o title_n unto_o all_o priest_n even_o from_o who_o all_o iniquity_n procee_v as_o he_o speak_v in_o festo_fw-la convers_n pauli_n ser_n 1._o and_o give_v unto_o eusebius_n both_o this_o and_o lofty_a title_n for_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr consider_n he_o call_v he_o the_o great_a priest_n the_o prince_n of_o bishop_n the_o heir_n of_o the_o apostle_n abel_n in_o primacy_n in_o government_n noah_n in_o patriarchship_n abraham_n in_o order_n melchisedek_n in_o dignity_n aaron_n in_o authority_n moses_n in_o judge_v samuel_n in_o power_n peter_n in_o vaction_n christ_n here_o be_v a_o rhapsody_n of_o glorious_a title_n and_o he_o add_v these_o passage_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v wrest_v to_o maintain_v the_o ambition_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n but_o whether_o he_o speak_v so_o in_o derision_n or_o according_a to_o his_o own_o mind_n it_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o his_o word_n follow_v immediate_o but_o first_o see_v what_o he_o large_a and_o confute_v by_o bernard_n at_o large_a say_v a_o little_a before_o what_o have_v the_o holy_a apostle_n leave_v in_o legacy_n unto_o thou_o he_o say_v what_o i_o have_v i_o give_v thou_o what_o be_v it_o one_o thing_n i_o know_v it_o be_v not_o silver_n nor_o gold_n see_v he_o say_v silver_n and_o gold_n have_v i_o not_o if_o thou_o happen_v to_o have_v it_o use_v it_o according_a to_o the_o time_n and_o not_o at_o thy_o pleasure_n so_o use_v they_o as_o not_o abuse_v they_o see_v these_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o soul_n good_a be_v neither_o good_a nor_o ill_a but_o the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v good_a the_o abuse_n ill_o the_o care_n of_o they_o be_v worse_a and_o seek_v be_v filthy_a by_o whatsoever_o way_n thou_o may_v have_v they_o certain_o thou_o have_v they_o not_o by_o title_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o he_o can_v not_o give_v what_o he_o have_v not_o what_o he_o have_v that_o he_o give_v the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n give_v he_o lordly_a power_n hear_v himself_o not_o domineer_a over_o the_o people_n but_o be_v a_o example_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o lest_o you_o think_v he_o say_v so_o in_o humility_n only_o and_o not_o in_o truth_n the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v dominion_n but_o not_o you_o so_o it_o be_v clear_a dominion_n be_v forbid_v unto_o the_o apostle_n go_v then_o and_o take_v if_o thou_o dare_v either_o apostleship_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o lord_n or_o dominion_n if_o thou_o be_v apostolical_a thou_o be_v clear_o forbid_v to_o do_v either_o of_o the_o two_o if_o thou_o will_v have_v they_o together_o thou_o shall_v lose_v they_o both_o or_o else_o think_v not_o thyself_o to_o be_v except_v from_o those_o of_o who_o god_n complain_v say_v they_o have_v reign_v but_o not_o by_o i_o they_o be_v prince_n and_o i_o know_v they_o not_o and_o if_o thou_o will_v reign_v without_o god_n thou_o have_v glory_n but_o not_o with_o god_n we_o see_v what_o be_v forbid_v now_o hear_v what_o be_v command_v who_o be_v the_o great_a among_o you_o let_v he_o be_v as_o the_o young_a and_o he_o that_o be_v chief_a as_o he_o that_o serve_v there_o be_v the_o model_n of_o a_o apostle_n dominion_n be_v forbid_v and_o serve_v be_v command_v which_o be_v commend_v also_o by_o example_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n for_o it_o follow_v i_o be_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o as_o he_o who_o serve_v bernard_n there_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o this_o purpose_n and_o after_o he_o have_v mention_v these_o former_a title_n and_o prerogative_n he_o say_v i_o have_v speak_v of_o who_o thou_o be_v but_o forget_v not_o what_o consider_v what_o thou_o be_v and_o now_o be_v why_o will_v thou_o not_o behold_v what_o thou_o can_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v indeed_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n what_o thou_o be_v and_o art_n and_o another_o who_o thou_o be_v become_v the_o one_o must_v not_o be_v forget_v in_o search_v thyself_o for_o thou_o be_v what_o thou_o be_v and_o thou_o be_v not_o less_o after_o thou_o be_v become_v such_o and_o perhaps_o more_o thou_o be_v bear_v that_o and_o change_v this_o but_o not_o change_v into_o this_o the_o former_a be_v not_o cast_v off_o but_o this_o be_v add_v if_o thou_o consider_v what_o remember_v thy_o nature_n thou_o be_v bear_v a_o man_n if_o thou_o ask_v who_o thou_o be_v a_o bishop_n this_o thou_o be_v make_v and_o not_o bear_v which_o of_o these_o think_v thou_o near_o or_o chief_a unto_o that_o thou_o be_v make_v or_o that_o thou_o be_v bear_v be_v not_o that_o thou_o be_v bear_v therefore_o i_o advise_v thou_o to_o
other_o alteration_n of_o that_o gloss_n all_o which_o do_v show_v how_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n change_v from_o itself_o so_o oft_o 20._o elias_n rubeus_fw-la tripelaniensis_fw-la write_v seven_o book_n which_o he_o call_v semidialia_n he_o writ_v there_o first_o against_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o then_o against_o the_o vice_n of_o all_o estate_n when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o clergy_n he_o tax_v their_o superstition_n prodigality_n pride_n and_o abominable_a enormity_n arise_v from_o their_o usurpation_n or_o abuse_n of_o alm_n lib._n 4._o he_o say_v if_o we_o will_v true_o cleave_v unto_o the_o truth_n we_o can_v speak_v no_o good_a of_o the_o universality_n of_o they_o without_o a_o lie_n catalogue_n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 17._o 21._o maenard_n count_n of_o tirolis_n take_v the_o castle_n of_o trent_n from_o henry_n then_o pope_n a_o appeal_n from_o the_o pope_n bishop_n and_o compel_v he_o to_o leave_v that_o see_n when_o henry_n be_v dead_a pope_n nicolaus_n the_o iv_o send_v into_o his_o place_n philip_n mantuan_n a_o franciscan_a and_o cause_v he_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o count_n maenard_n by_o open_a proclamation_n publish_v his_o apology_n that_o he_o have_v not_o raise_v but_o repulse_v war_n that_o nothing_o be_v more_o dear_a unto_o he_o then_o peace_n especial_o with_o bishop_n but_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v holy_a father_n be_v corrupt_a with_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v bereave_v he_o of_o his_o ancient_a patrimony_n if_o any_o will_v assure_v he_o that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o wrong_v he_o nor_o he_o hereafter_o he_o will_v render_v all_o that_o he_o have_v take_v from_o they_o otherwise_o he_o will_v not_o be_v such_o a_o fool_n to_o quit_v his_o inheritance_n unto_o these_o effeminate_a antichrist_n and_o prodigious_a eunuch_n none_o do_v trouble_v the_o common_a peace_n as_o they_o do_v they_o be_v not_o reader_n of_o scripture_n nor_o teacher_n of_o people_n but_o father_n of_o bastard_n wine-bibber_n avaricious_a usurper_n of_o land_n and_o kingdom_n if_o they_o be_v not_o antichrist_n what_o be_v they_o worse_o be_v they_o then_o turk_n or_o tartar_n or_o jew_n and_o do_v more_o offend_v christian_a simplicity_n whereas_o they_o be_v our_o inferior_n they_o will_v have_v we_o to_o be_v their_o servant_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nation_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o i_o appeal_v from_o the_o cruel_a and_o unjust_a high_a priest_n unto_o our_o true_a pastor_n and_o divine_a father_n catalogue_n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 17._o ex_fw-la aventi_fw-la lib._n 7._o 22._o when_o pope_n nicolaus_n the_o iv_o do_v advance_v the_o minorite_n an._n 1294._o truth_n friar_n have_v no_o truth_n the_o university_n of_o paris_n have_v a_o meeting_n against_o they_o the_o bishop_n ambianensis_fw-la have_v the_o semon_n his_o text_n be_v the_o lord_n be_v near_o unto_o all_o that_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o truth_n there_o he_o declare_v a_o threefold_a truth_n of_o life_n of_o doctrine_n and_o of_o righteousness_n the_o friar_n have_v none_o of_o these_o not_o of_o life_n for_o their_o hypocrisy_n be_v notorious_a not_o of_o doctrine_n because_o in_o word_n they_o teach_v pleasant_a thing_n but_o they_o carry_v gall_n in_o their_o heart_n not_o of_o righteousness_n because_o they_o usurp_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o office_n and_o benefice_n of_o other_o the_o priests_z 23._o we_o have_v often_o hear_v how_o the_o pope_n be_v busy_a to_o send_v christian_a asia_n the_o loss_n of_o the_o christian_a conquest_n in_o asia_n prince_n into_o syria_n their_o aim_n be_v the_o enrich_n and_o enlarge_n the_o see_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o event_n be_v the_o shed_n of_o christian_a blood_n the_o particular_a exploit_n fill_v up_o volume_n but_o the_o general_n may_v be_v understand_v partly_o by_o what_o be_v touch_v already_o i_o will_v summary_o add_v a_o example_n or_o two_o more_o in_o the_o year_n 1220._o when_o pope_n honorius_n have_v excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n many_o prince_n and_o bishop_n go_v thither_o the_o pope_n legate_n pelagius_n will_v be_v general_a commander_n wherefore_o john_n king_n of_o jerusalem_n withdraw_v himself_o and_o his_o army_n and_o these_o fresh_a soldier_n will_v not_o be_v marshal_v by_o a_o bishop_n then_o the_o legate_n see_v he_o can_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o king_n send_v letter_n entreat_v he_o to_o have_v compassion_n on_o the_o christian_a army_n the_o king_n as_o a_o wise_a man_n say_v io._n naucler_n generate_fw-la 41._o consider_v howbeit_o it_o be_v not_o honourable_a that_o such_o affair_n shall_v be_v manage_v by_o priest_n yet_o to_o satisfy_v the_o command_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o gather_v the_o christian_n in_o syria_n and_o march_v to_o damiata_n when_o he_o be_v come_v his_o advice_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o expedient_a at_o that_o time_n to_o go_v into_o the_o field_n because_o about_o that_o season_n nilus_n be_v wont_a to_o overflow_v the_o legate_n be_v impatient_a of_o delay_n and_o threaten_v they_o all_o with_o excommunication_n who_o will_v speak_v in_o the_o contrary_n the_o army_n be_v about_o 70000._o man_n the_o sultan_n will_v not_o fight_v but_o stop_v their_o passage_n until_o nilus_n do_v overflow_v the_o land_n and_o the_o christian_n be_v bring_v into_o that_o extremity_n that_o they_o can_v neither_o continue_v nor_o march_v and_o so_o be_v force_v to_o quit_v damiata_n unto_o the_o sultan_n if_o he_o will_v let_v they_o return_v to_o aca_n and_o tirus_fw-la and_o he_o to_o satisfy_v their_o superstition_n give_v they_o a_o piece_n of_o christ_n cross_n which_o he_o have_v bring_v from_o jerusalem_n the_o venetian_n genoese_a pisanes_n and_o other_o within_o the_o town_n hear_v of_o this_o agreement_n refuse_v to_o give_v over_o the_o town_n and_o the_o army_n do_v threaten_v they_o to_o deliver_v aca_n unto_o the_o saracen_n if_o they_o will_v not_o leave_v damiata_n according_a to_o the_o agreement_n now_o many_o of_o they_o have_v their_o family_n in_o aca_n so_o damiata_n be_v lose_v after_o the_o loss_n of_o tripoli_n beritus_n tirus_fw-la and_o sidon_n pope_n nicolaus_n the_o iv_o stir_v up_o the_o christian_n to_o go_v unto_o the_o defence_n of_o ptolemais_n but_o they_o have_v no_o government_n nor_o discipline_n and_o so_o do_v more_o harm_n then_o good_a for_o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o master_n of_o the_o templarii_n hospitalarii_n and_o teutonici_n and_o the_o king_n of_o cyprus_n and_o sicily_n strive_v for_o the_o command_n and_o when_o they_o be_v at_o this_o dissension_n the_o sultan_n invade_v they_o and_o they_o leave_v it_o 196._o year_n after_o it_o be_v conquer_v by_o godifrid_n say_v io._n naucler_n gener_fw-la 44._o and_o of_o all_o the_o purchase_n then_o no_o place_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o christian_n but_o cyprus_n and_o cilicia_n 24._o the_o christian_n can_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o turk_n yet_o god_n stay_v tartar_n of_o the_o tartar_n the_o infidel_n that_o they_o can_v not_o make_v new_a invasion_n against_o the_o christian_n at_o that_o time_n for_o the_o scythian_n or_o tartar_n come_v out_o of_o the_o north_n like_o grasshopper_n for_o multitude_n say_v nic._n gregoras_n and_o matth._n parisien_n say_v in_o infinite_a multitude_n they_o divide_v themselves_o in_o their_o own_o country_n the_o one_o party_n go_v against_o the_o turk_n in_o asia_n about_o the_o year_n 1220._o and_o the_o other_o under_o bato_n say_v platin._n in_o innocen_n iu_o matth._n paris_n call_v he_o bathchatarcan_a come_v into_o europe_n overrun_v russia_n polonia_n bohem_n hungaria_n &c_n &c_n with_o so_o many_o and_o huge_a calamity_n that_o the_o like_a be_v not_o hear_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n say_v matth._n paris_n ad_fw-la an._n 1241._o when_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n go_v against_o they_o they_o flee_v through_o bulgaria_n and_o thracia_n into_o asia_n and_o join_v with_o the_o other_o party_n at_o iconium_n the_o palace_n of_o the_o turk_n nicep_v gregor_n as_o say_v john_n ducas_n emperor_n of_o the_o greek_n receive_v ten_o thousand_o of_o they_o and_o give_v they_o land_n in_o macedonia_n and_o phrygia_n to_o be_v in_o readiness_n against_o his_o adversary_n these_o do_v prevail_v mighty_o against_o the_o turk_n and_o take_v many_o of_o their_o land_n and_o make_v up_o a_o vast_a kingdom_n in_o asia_n and_o call_v their_o prince_n chan_n or_o cham._n about_o the_o year_n 1250._o the_o cham_n mango_n by_o persuasion_n of_o hyatho_n king_n of_o armenia_n be_v convert_v to_o christian_a profession_n his_o brother_n chaolon_n conquer_v all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o persia_n and_o vanquish_v the_o calipha_n of_o babylon_n he_o overrun_v all_o the_o land_n about_o jerusalem_n but_o spare_v to_o come_v near_o the_o city_n at_o the_o request_n of_o hyatho_n the_o three_o cham_n be_v mango_n and_o after_o he_o cobila_n or_o gobelus_n keep_v the_o faith_n and_o
and_o reward_n do_v flatter_v the_o pope_n and_o teach_v new_a doctrine_n and_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o subject_a unto_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o holy_a council_n and_o the_o pope_n may_v judge_v all_o and_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o but_o shall_v be_v leave_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n only_o even_o although_o he_o draw_v after_o he_o soul_n by_o drove_n into_o hell_n they_o consider_v not_o that_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o pope_n enlarge_n their_o own_o phylactery_n or_o of_o their_o flatterer_n and_o because_o these_o word_n be_v easy_o refute_v they_o run_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n not_o regard_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o the_o fancy_n of_o their_o own_o brain_n and_o the_o prattle_n of_o the_o word_n thou_o be_v cephas_n by_o these_o they_o will_v make_v the_o pope_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n and_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n and_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o cast_v thyself_o into_o the_o sea_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v a_o fisher_n of_o man_n and_o christ_n command_v to_o pay_v tribute_n for_o he_o and_o he_o all_o which_o these_o man_n do_v wonderful_o proclaim_v but_o they_o do_v altogether_o despise_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a teacher_n etc._n etc._n aene._n silvius_n in_o his_o comment_n de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la council_n lib._n 1._o make_v oft_o use_v of_o this_o oration_n 17._o in_o the_o same_o council_n lewis_n cardinal_z of_o arelatensis_fw-la do_v maintain_v these_o position_n more_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o a_o private_a presbyter_n if_o he_o have_v better_o warrant_v of_o scripture_n or_o reason_n than_o unto_o a_o pope_n or_o whole_a council_n counsel_n have_v err_v and_o have_v be_v correct_v and_o content_v to_o be_v direct_v by_o a_o presbyter_n as_o the_o most_o famous_a council_n of_o nice_a be_v by_o athanasius_n when_o he_o be_v a_o presbyter_n counsel_n consist_v not_o only_o of_o bishop_n but_o of_o presbyter_n also_o for_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v 600._o priest_n which_o be_v a_o name_n common_a to_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o in_o other_o counsel_n they_o seek_v neither_o of_o bishos_n nor_o priest_n but_o of_o father_n which_o be_v also_o a_o common_a name_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o now_o according_a to_o the_o teslimony_n of_o hierom_n bishop_n be_v above_o presbyter_n by_o custom_n rather_o than_o by_o constitution_n for_o even_o paul_n call_v presbyter_n bishop_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o titus_n these_o that_o be_v call_v bishop_n stand_v in_o awe_n of_o king_n for_o their_o worldly_a wealth_n more_o than_o of_o god_n for_o their_o soul_n whereas_o the_o multitude_n of_o presbyter_n here_o present_a despise_v the_o world_n and_o their_o life_n for_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n he_o insi_v much_o on_o this_o point_n because_o antonius_n panormitan_n will_v not_o give_v a_o decisive_a voice_n unto_o the_o priest_n aen._n silvius_n ibid._n 18._o paul_n episc_n burgensis_n and_o spanish_a orator_n who_o aen._n silvius_n call_v decus_fw-la praelatorum_fw-la hold_v in_o that_o council_n that_o a_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o when_o it_o be_v lawful_o assemble_v even_o without_o his_o consent_n he_o have_v not_o power_n to_o dissolve_v discharge_v or_o adjourn_v it_o this_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o man_n at_o last_o he_o use_v a_o argument_n from_o natural_a reason_n and_o testimony_n of_o aristotle_n and_o say_v in_o all_o well_o establish_v kingdom_n that_o be_v chief_o look_v unto_o that_o the_o kingdom_n may_v do_v more_o than_o the_o king_n if_o it_o be_v contrary_a wise_a it_o be_v not_o a_o kingdom_n but_o a_o tyranny_n it_o be_v so_o with_o the_o church_n she_o shall_v have_v more_o power_n than_o the_o pope_n whereupon_o silvius_n write_v more_o full_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v in_o the_o church_n as_o a_o king_n in_o his_o kingdom_n but_o it_o be_v absurd_a that_o a_o king_n have_v more_o power_n than_o all_o his_o kingdom_n therefore_o the_o pope_n shall_v not_o have_v more_o power_n than_o the_o church_n but_o as_o sometime_o king_n for_o their_o evil_a administration_n and_o tyranny_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n so_o without_o doubt_n the_o roman_a pope_n may_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o church_n that_o be_v by_o a_o general_a council_n in_o this_o matter_n i_o make_v no_o account_n of_o they_o who_o give_v so_o large_a power_n unto_o king_n as_o if_o they_o be_v tie_v unto_o no_o law_n those_o be_v but_o flatterer_n and_o prattle_v otherwise_o then_o they_o think_v for_o although_o it_o be_v say_v moderation_n be_v always_o in_o the_o prince_n that_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v when_o there_o be_v reason_n to_o decline_v from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n he_o be_v a_o king_n who_o watch_v over_o and_o procure_v the_o common_a good_a who_o delight_v in_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o who_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o do_v aim_v at_o the_o welfare_n of_o his_o people_n and_o if_o he_o do_v not_o so_o he_o may_v be_v call_v not_o a_o king_n but_o a_o tyrant_n look_v only_o unto_o his_o own_o interest_n ......_o if_o we_o see_v a_o king_n despise_v law_n rob_v his_o subject_n deflower_v virgin_n and_o do_v all_o thing_n at_o his_o pleasure_n will_v not_o the_o peer_n of_o the_o land_n conveen_v put_v he_o away_o and_o advance_v another_o who_o shall_v swear_v to_o rule_v by_o law_n so_o reason_n and_o experience_n do_v teach_v the_o same_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v in_o the_o council_n and_o so_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o council_n say_v silvius_n 19_o a_o greek_a abbot_n have_v a_o sermon_n at_o that_o council_n and_o begin_v thus_o lo_o soldier_n cast_v away_o the_o work_n of_o darkness_n there_o he_o rebuke_v the_o clergy_n that_o they_o have_v lose_v their_o spiritual_a armour_n and_o he_o exhort_v the_o father_n to_o reform_v the_o clergy_n or_o else_o the_o church_n will_v perish_v catal._n test_n ver_fw-la 20._o james_n de_fw-fr guitrod_n a_o carthusian_n live_v about_o the_o year_n 1440._o among_o other_o book_n he_o write_v de_fw-fr septem_fw-la statibus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o apocalypsi_fw-la descriptis_fw-la there_o he_o accuse_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n that_o they_o do_v continual_o hinder_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o do_v always_o tremble_v at_o the_o name_n of_o a_o council_n he_o write_v another_o book_n de_fw-fr errorib_n christianorum_fw-la modernis_fw-la where_o he_o note_v not_o only_o the_o vice_n of_o people_n and_o clergy_n but_o their_o idolatry_n their_o pilgrimage_n and_o gad_v to_o image_n their_o miracle_n feign_v for_o avarice_n he_o say_v christian_a religion_n be_v in_o derision_n with_o infidel_n because_o of_o so_o many_o impiety_n and_o vanity_n of_o christian_n man_n accept_v and_o love_v one_o another_o for_o their_o work_n but_o god_n accept_v the_o work_n for_o the_o man_n and_o therefore_o every_o man_n shall_v first_o endeavour_n to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n before_o he_o can_v hope_v that_o his_o work_n can_v be_v accept_v in_o another_o book_n de_fw-fr causis_fw-la &_o remedus_fw-la passionum_fw-la he_o rebuke_v the_o pride_n of_o prelate_n and_o say_v plain_o they_o have_v the_o place_n of_o antichrist_n and_o not_o of_o christ_n and_o their_o pride_n be_v the_o pride_n of_o lucifer_n 21._o john_n gochius_n priest_n of_o mechlin_n then_o avouch_v that_o the_o writing_n of_o albe●tus_n thomas_n and_o other_o sophist_n take_v from_o the_o muddy_a channel_n of_o philosophy_n do_v more_o obscure_a than_o inlighten_v the_o truth_n they_o fight_v against_o the_o canonical_a truth_n and_o against_o themselves_o they_o smell_v of_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v follow_v and_o all_o other_o writing_n shall_v be_v examine_v by_o they_o even_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n and_o counsel_n monkish_a vow_n be_v not_o profitable_a unto_o godliness_n and_o be_v contrary_a unto_o christian_a liberty_n work_n be_v not_o satisfactory_a unto_o god_n justice_n but_o we_o be_v justify_v through_o the_o only_a mercy_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o our_o deserve_n sin_n remain_v in_o the_o godly_a but_o be_v not_o impute_v unto_o they_o and_o be_v forgive_v for_o christ_n he_o refute_v they_o who_o do_v mince_v sin_n in_o the_o godly_a catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 19_o 22._o nicolaus_n cusanus_fw-la bishop_n of_o brixia_n be_v by_o aen._n silvius_n call_v hercules_n of_o pope_n eugenius_n and_o he_o lament_v that_o so_o noble_a a_o head_n have_v stray_v into_o the_o
ernest_n archb._n of_o magdeburgh_n be_v a_o ding_o an._n 1511._o his_o chaplain_n clemens_n schaw_n and_o two_o franciscan_n be_v by_o he_o and_o one_o of_o the_o franciscan_n say_v famous_a prince_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n we_o will_v communicate_v unto_o your_o highness_n not_o only_o all_o our_o good_a work_n but_o likewise_o of_o all_o the_o order_n of_o the_o minorite_n and_o without_o doubt_n when_o you_o have_v these_o you_o shall_v stand_v just_a and_o bless_a before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n ernest_n answer_v by_o no_o mean_n will_v i_o trust_v either_o in_o my_o own_o work_n or_o in_o you_o but_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n only_o be_v sufficient_a catalogue_n test._n ver_fw-la lib._n 19_o ex_fw-la cl._n schaw_n 11._o john_n picus_n lord_n of_o mirandula_n and_o earl_n of_o concordia_n be_v about_o that_o time_n admire_v for_o his_o learning_n his_o book_n begin_v to_o be_v print_v an._n 1504_o he_o write_v 900_o proposition_n which_o he_o defend_v in_o public_a disputation_n at_o rome_n among_o they_o be_v these_o follow_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n local_o and_o on_o the_o altar_n sacramental_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n one_o body_n can_v not_o be_v in_o diverse_a place_n at_o once_o consecration_n be_v not_o make_v precise_o by_o these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la unless_o the_o antecedent_n word_n be_v add_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o the_o night_n he_o be_v betray_v ....._o neither_o the_o cross_n nor_o any_o image_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_fw-la no_o nor_o as_o s._n thomas_n express_v it_o the_o doctor_n condemn_v these_o thesis_n and_o he_o write_v a_o apology_n defend_v they_o to_o be_v catholic_n especial_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n he_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v present_a without_o any_o conversion_n or_o annihilation_n of_o the_o bread_n he_o say_v may_v be_v and_o not_o be_v present_a to_o eschew_v their_o bond_n without_o doubt_n he_o have_v speak_v more_o plain_o if_o he_o can_v have_v do_v it_o free_o in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o the_o emperor_n maximilian_n an._n 1500._o he_o say_v with_o such_o faith_n and_o piety_n as_o i_o can_v i_o beseech_v thou_o that_o with_o all_o diligence_n thou_o will_v accomplish_v that_o thy_o most_o holy_a purpose_n to_o restore_v the_o christian_a republic_n unto_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n it_o be_v waste_v by_o outward_a enemy_n and_o tear_v by_o inward_a and_o the_o sheepfold_a of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v consecrate_v by_o his_o blood_n have_v suffer_v and_o daily_o suffer_v far_o worse_o from_o wolf_n under_o sheepskin_n then_o under_o their_o own_o colour_n go-on_a then_o most_o worthy_a caesar_n and_o excite_v christian_a king_n by_o what_o mean_v thou_o can_v and_o show_v thyself_o a_o faithful_a servant_n unto_o christ_n the_o king_n of_o all_o king_n who_o will_v quick_o deliver_v his_o sheep_n as_o well_o from_o outward_a enemy_n as_o from_o false_a shepherd_n in_o time_n of_o the_o conflict_n of_o the_o two_o counsel_n of_o pisa_n and_o lateran_n he_o handle_v that_o question_n whether_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o faith_n a_o pope_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o a_o council_n or_o contra_fw-la and_o say_v according_a unto_o the_o gloss_n of_o the_o decree_n do_v 19_o c._n anastasius_n where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o pope_n shall_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n seek_v a_o council_n and_o therefore_o the_o synod_n be_v more_o than_o a_o pope_n and_o he_o add_v wherefore_o the_o archdeacon_n of_o bononia_n approve_v the_o gloss_n say_v it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o make_v our_o faith_n subject_n unto_o the_o pleasure_n of_o any_o man_n and_o so_o say_v bernard_n what_o great_a pride_n one_o man_n to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o all_o the_o world_n and_o when_o he_o have_v show_v his_o judgement_n that_o the_o great_a number_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o lesser_a caeteris_fw-la paribus_fw-la he_o add_v but_o if_o the_o great_a part_n will_v decern_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o against_o these_o thing_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v violat_a and_o a_o small_a number_n oppose_v they_o we_o shall_v cleave_v unto_o the_o lesser_a number_n as_o in_o the_o council_n of_o arimino_n and_o the_o second_o at_o ephesus_n yea_o we_o shall_v believe_v a_o country_n man_n or_o a_o old_a wife_n rather_o than_o a_o pope_n or_o a_o thousand_o bishop_n if_o these_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o former_a follow_v the_o gospel_n likewise_o speak_v of_o that_o question_n whether_o the_o pope_n and_o counsel_n may_v err_v he_o say_v it_o may_v be_v easy_o decide_v because_o he_o have_v already_o show_v they_o may_v err_v from_o the_o scripture_n many_o counsel_n and_o pope_n have_v fall_v into_o heresy_n it_o oft_o happen_v that_o he_o who_o be_v account_v precedent_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o dutiful_o discharge_v his_o presidence_n and_o sometime_o he_o can_v not_o be_v precedent_n at_o all_o see_v it_o be_v record_v that_o in_o former_a time_n a_o woman_n be_v pope_n and_o i_o remember_v of_o a_o learned_a man_n who_o in_o our_o age_n have_v attain_v great_a esteem_n of_o religiousness_n and_o teach_v albeit_o not_o altogether_o public_o that_o he_o who_o be_v choose_v pope_n at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o pope_n ...._o and_o i_o remember_v of_o another_o who_o be_v receive_v and_o adore_v as_o pope_n who_o good_a and_o worthy_a man_n think_v neither_o to_o be_v pope_n nor_o that_o he_o can_v be_v pope_n for_o he_o believe_v not_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o they_o do_v testify_v of_o his_o most_o wicked_a deedsin_n buy_v the_o papacy_n and_o exercise_v all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n yea_o and_o they_o declare_v his_o most_o wicked_a word_n for_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o he_o confess_v unto_o his_o familiar_a friend_n that_o he_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o god_n even_o since_o he_o be_v ruler_n of_o the_o papal_a see_v i_o hear_v of_o another_o pope_n who_o in_o his_o time_n say_v unto_o his_o friend_n he_o believe_v not_o the_o immortality_n of_o soul_n and_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a he_o appear_v unto_o the_o same_o man_n and_o say_v that_o to_o his_o great_a loss_n and_o by_o everlasting_a fire_n he_o have_v find_v or_o know_v that_o soul_n be_v immortal_a ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n this_o john_n have_v a_o oration_n in_o the_o council_n at_o lateran_n before_o pope_n leo_n x._o wherein_o he_o speak_v free_o of_o a_o necessity_n of_o reformation_n because_o of_o their_o corrupt_a manner_n their_o adulterate_a law_n and_o canon_n their_o decay_a religion_n even_o among_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o godliness_n say_v he_o be_v almost_o turn_v into_o superstition_n righteousness_n into_o hatred_n or_o favour_n and_o man_n of_o all_o estate_n do_v sin_n open_o so_o that_o virtue_n be_v oft_o blame_v in_o good_a man_n and_o vice_n honour_v in_o place_n of_o virtue_n especial_o by_o those_o who_o will_v have_v as_o it_o be_v the_o wall_n and_o hedge_n of_o their_o own_o crime_n and_o strange_a insolency_n and_o contumacy_n unpunished_a these_o malady_n these_o sore_n thou_o must_v heal_v o_o great_a highpriest_n or_o if_o thou_o refuse_v to_o cure_v they_o i_o fear_v lest_o he_o who_o crown_n thou_o hold_v on_o earth_n cut_v off_o and_o destroy_v the_o infect_a member_n not_o with_o fomentation_n but_o with_o fire_n and_o sword_n i_o think_v very_o that_o he_o give_v certain_a sign_n of_o his_o future_a medicine_n by_o pestilence_n famine_n and_o bloody_a war_n at_o such_o admonition_n and_o heavenly_a thunder_n we_o shall_v have_v lift_v up_o our_o ear_n unto_o repentance_n but_o we_o rather_o lose_v they_o like_o the_o moor_n which_o become_v deaf_a at_o the_o continual_a noise_n of_o nilus_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n for_o john_n chrysostom_n think_v that_o all_o evil_n proceed_v from_o the_o church_n and_o hierom_n write_v that_o he_o have_v find_v no_o man_n which_o have_v deceive_v the_o people_n but_o the_o priest_n if_o thou_o will_v reform_v and_o correct_v these_o thing_n willing_a or_o unwilling_a thou_o shall_v be_v think_v by_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o have_v lift_v up_o a_o standert_fw-ge of_o a_o full_a reformation_n this_o thou_o o_o great_a high_a priest_n shall_v do_v and_o none_o other_o on_o earth_n more_o than_o thou_o and_o if_o thou_o will_v not_o remember_v i_o pray_v thou_o that_o old_a priest_n who_o be_v punish_v for_o not_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o his_o son_n for_o they_o who_o be_v set_v over_o other_o shall_v not_o only_o be_v innocent_a themselves_o but_o resist_v the_o nocent_a and_o repress_v their_o wickedness_n and_o when_o he_o have_v show_v more_o particular_o that_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o clergy_n have_v very_o great_a need_n of_o reformation_n he_o prove_v the_o same_o of_o their_o
and_o there_o enter_v into_o the_o monastery_n of_o the_o augustinian_n after_o three_o year_n he_o be_v invite_v to_o be_v professor_n of_o philosophy_n in_o witembergh_n and_o there_o he_o be_v graduate_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n by_o andr._n catolstadius_n an._n 1512._o in_o erford_n he_o have_v learn_v of_o a_o old_a augustinian_n that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o believe_v general_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o that_o it_o belong_v unto_o they_o only_o who_o name_n be_v register_v in_o scripture_n but_o every_o true_a penitent_n may_v believe_v that_o his_o own_o sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o free_o in_o christ_n and_o according_o be_v that_o to_o be_v understand_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n free_o afterward_o he_o read_v the_o work_n of_o augustin_n and_o despise_v not_o the_o sententiaries_n namely_o thomas_n biel_n occam_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o the_o year_n 1516._o he_o have_v a_o public_a disputation_n of_o freewill_n against_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o schoolman_n as_o lu._n osiand_n in_o epit._n hist_o cent_n 16._o li._n 1._o c._n 19_o rehearse_v his_o question_n be_v whether_o man_n be_v create_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n can_v by_o his_o natural_a power_n keep_v the_o command_n of_o god_n the_o creator_n or_o do_v or_o think_v any_o good_a and_o by_o grace_n deserve_v and_o know_v his_o merit_n he_o answer_v in_o three_o conclusion_n and_o so_o many_o corollary_n unto_o each_o of_o they_o conclu_n i_o man_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o soul_n make_v to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o so_o fit_v for_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n do_v by_o his_o natural_a strength_n only_o make_v every_o creature_n which_o he_o use_v subject_a to_o vanity_n and_o seek_v himself_o and_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n corollar_n 1._o the_o old_a man_n be_v vanity_n of_o vanity_n altogether_o vanity_n and_o make_v all_o creature_n even_o which_o be_v good_a to_o be_v vain_a coral_n ii_o the_o old_a man_n be_v call_v flesh_n not_o only_o because_o he_o be_v lead_v with_o sensual_a concupiscence_n but_o albeit_o he_o be_v chaste_a wise_a just_a because_o he_o be_v not_o renew_v of_o god_n by_o the_o spirit_n corol._n 3_o albeit_o all_o unbeliever_n be_v vain_a and_o do_v no_o good_a yet_o they_o shall_v not_o all_o suffer_v alike_o punishment_n conclus_fw-la 2._o a_o man_n without_o god_n grace_n can_v no_o way_n keep_v his_o commandment_n nor_o prepare_v himself_o unto_o grace_n well_fw-mi de_fw-fr congruo_fw-la well_fw-mi de_fw-fr condigno_fw-la but_o necessary_o abide_v under_o sin_n goroll_n 1._o the_o will_n of_o man_n without_o grace_n be_v not_o free_a but_o serve_v albeit_o not_o unwilling_o cor._n 2._o when_o a_o man_n do_v what_o be_v in_o himself_o he_o sin_v see_v of_o himself_o he_o can_v neither_o will_n nor_o think_v well_o cor_n 3._o see_v the_o righteousness_n of_o believer_n be_v hide_v in_o god_n and_o their_o sin_n be_v manifest_a in_o themselves_o it_o be_v true_a that_o only_o the_o un_fw-fr just_a be_v damn_v and_o sinner_n &_o whore_n be_v save_v conclus_fw-la iii_o grace_n or_o charity_n which_o help_v not_o but_o in_o extreme_a necessity_n be_v very_o dull_a or_o rather_o no_o charity_n unless_o by_o extreme_a necessity_n be_v understand_v not_o the_o peril_n of_o death_n but_o every_o one_o want_n coral_n 1._o christ_n jesus_n our_o strength_n our_o righteousness_n the_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o reins_n be_v the_o only_a searcher_n and_o judge_n of_o our_o merit_n cor._n 2._o see_v unto_o a_o believer_n all_o thing_n by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n be_v possible_a it_o be_v superstitious_a to_o depute_v other_o help_n unto_o man_n will_n or_o of_o other_o saint_n cor._n 3._o according_a to_o the_o premise_n be_v the_o answer_n unto_o the_o question_n he_o write_v unto_o a_o eremite_n thus_o i_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o thy_o soul_n do_v whether_o now_o in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v weary_a of_o its_o righteousness_n and_o learn_v to_o be_v refresh_v with_o and_o trust_v in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o our_o time_n the_o tentation_n of_o presumption_n be_v strong_a in_o many_o and_o chief_o in_o those_o who_o study_n to_o be_v just_a and_o good_a by_o their_o own_o strength_n and_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n abundant_o and_o be_v give_v free_o seek_v by_o themselves_o to_o do_v well_o so_o long_o until_o they_o have_v confidence_n to_o stand_v before_o god_n as_o it_o be_v adorn_v by_o their_o own_o strength_n and_o merit_n which_o be_v impossible_a thou_o be_v some_o time_n in_o this_o opinion_n or_o error_n and_o so_o be_v i_o but_o now_o i_o fight_v against_o this_o error_n but_o as_o yet_o have_v not_o overcome_v therefore_o dear_a brother_n learn_v christ_n and_o he_o crucify_a learn_v to_o sing_v unto_o he_o and_o despair_v of_o thyself_o to_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o lord_n jesus_n be_v my_o righteousness_n but_o i_o be_o thy_o sin_n thou_o have_v take_v i_o and_o have_v give_v i_o thou_o thou_o have_v take_v what_o thou_o be_v not_o and_o have_v give_v i_o what_o i_o be_v not_o take_v heed_n lest_o at_o any_o time_n thou_o aspire_v unto_o so_o great_a purity_n that_o thou_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o thyself_o a_o sinner_n yea_o or_o not_o to_o be_v a_o sinner_n for_o christ_n dwell_v not_o but_o in_o sinner_n for_o therefore_o come_v he_o down_o from_o heaven_n where_o he_o dwell_v among_o the_o righteous_a that_o he_o may_v dwell_v in_o sinner_n think_v upon_o that_o his_o love_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v his_o most_o sweet_a consolation_n for_o if_o we_o must_v come_v by_o our_o labour_n and_o affliction_n to_o the_o peace_n of_o conscience_n why_o have_v he_o die_v therefore_o thou_o can_v not_o find_v peace_n but_o by_o he_o and_o by_o fiducial_a despair_v of_o thyself_o and_o thy_o work_n and_o further_o thou_o shall_v learn_v thereby_o that_o as_o he_o have_v take_v thou_o and_o make_v thy_o sin_n he_o so_o have_v he_o make_v his_o righteousness_n thou_o howbeit_o luther_n have_v so_o dispute_v and_o write_v yet_o none_o do_v oppose_v he_o but_o rather_o he_o purchase_v love_n and_o estimation_n 3._o when_o the_o indulgence_n be_v proclaim_v and_o preach_v in_o the_o manner_n assault_n luther_n first_o assault_n name_v before_o his_o zeal_n can_v not_o endure_v the_o vanity_n of_o they_o and_o the_o blasphemy_n wherewith_o they_o be_v commend_v at_o the_o first_o he_o speak_v not_o against_o the_o use_n of_o indulgence_n but_o against_o the_o abuse_n of_o they_o and_o against_o the_o blasphemous_a commend_v of_o they_o and_o as_o he_o show_v in_o his_o apology_n which_o be_v in_o sleidan_n lib._n 13_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n exhort_v he_o humble_o to_o inhibit_v or_o restrain_v these_o friar_n but_o the_o bishop_n return_v he_o no_o answer_n yet_o the_o bishop_n of_o brandenburg_n hear_v of_o that_o epistle_n do_v admonish_v luther_n to_o take_v heed_n lest_o he_o bring_v himself_o into_o danger_n likewise_o alb._n crantzius_n the_o historian_n say_v unto_o he_o brother_n you_o speak_v truth_n but_o you_o can_v not_o help_v it_o go_v into_o your_o cell_n and_o pray_v lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o and_o the_o prior_n and_o subprior_fw-la of_o wittenberg_n do_v entreat_v he_o that_o for_o respect_n unto_o their_o order_n he_o will_v be_v silent_a and_o not_o bring_v it_o into_o contempt_n and_o the_o rather_o that_o the_o franciscanes_n be_v beginning_n to_o rejoice_v that_o the_o augustinian_n be_v fall_v into_o contempt_n even_o as_o they_o luther_n answer_v all_o this_o will_v fall_v if_o it_o be_v not_o begin_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o if_o it_o be_v let_v we_o trust_v to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v carry_v it_o on_o schultet_fw-la annal._n ad_fw-la an._n 1517._o john_n bishop_n of_o misna_n at_o that_o time_n say_v he_o have_v late_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therein_o have_v find_v a_o religion_n very_o unlike_a unto_o that_o that_o be_v present_o profess_v and_o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n he_o hear_v of_o tecelius_n and_o say_v this_o will_v be_v the_o last_o seller_n of_o such_o ware_n for_o intolerable_a be_v his_o impudence_n ibid._n a_o rich_a woman_n of_o magdeburgh_n after_o confession_n can_v not_o have_v a_o pardon_n from_o a_o dominican_n unless_o she_o will_v give_v a_o hundred_o florenes_n she_o advise_v with_o a_o franciscan_a her_o former_a confessor_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o she_o god_n forgive_v sin_n free_o and_o sell_v not_o as_o a_o merchant_n and_o he_o beseech_v she_o that_o she_o will_v not_o tell_v tecelin_n who_o have_v inform_v she_o so_o but_o when_o tecelius_n know_v that_o for_o this_o cause_n she_o will_v not_o give_v the_o money_n he_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v either_o burn_v or_o banish_v
and_o the_o cloister_n ii_o in_o aprile_a an._n 1521._o charles_n v._o call_v a_o diet_n at_o worm_n thither_o 1521._o what_o be_v do_v for_o &_o against_o religion_n an._n 1521._o be_v luther_n summon_v and_o a_o safe_a conduct_n be_v send_v unto_o he_o some_o will_v have_v dissuade_v he_o because_o his_o doctrine_n be_v condemn_v at_o rome_n and_o his_o person_n be_v accurse_v there_o on_o maundy-thurseday_n he_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o proceed_n of_o that_o court_n be_v to_o be_v confirm_v in_o this_o if_o worse_a be_v not_o do_v unto_o himself_o as_o be_v do_v to_o john_n huss_n luther_n answer_v i_o will_v go_v thither_o albeit_o there_o be_v there_o as_o many_o devil_n as_o there_o be_v tile_n in_o the_o house_n he_o appear_v before_o the_o estate_n aprile_a 17._o and_o be_v demand_v whether_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o book_n that_o be_v abroad_o in_o his_o name_n and_o when_o they_o be_v name_v he_o do_v acknowledge_v they_o then_o whether_o he_o will_v maintain_v what_o be_v write_v in_o they_o or_o recall_v any_o part_n of_o they_o he_o answer_v that_o question_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n i_o humble_o crave_v some_o space_n to_o advise_v they_o grant_v he_o one_o day_n and_o then_o he_o say_v these_o book_n be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o nature_n some_o contain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o piety_n some_o be_v against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o romanist_n and_o some_o be_v write_v contentious_o against_o the_o maintainer_n of_o these_o error_n to_o recall_v the_o first_o sort_n be_v not_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a man_n because_o albeit_o the_o bull_n of_o leo_n have_v condemn_v they_o yet_o he_o have_v not_o judge_v they_o as_o impious_a as_o for_o the_o second_o sort_n it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v that_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o especial_o germany_n be_v miserable_o vex_v do_v groan_n under_o a_o heavy_a yoke_n and_o so_o to_o abjure_v these_o book_n be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o that_o tyranny_n he_o confess_v that_o in_o the_o three_o sort_n he_o have_v write_v a_o little_a tartely_fw-mi but_o he_o be_v now_o call_v to_o give_v account_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o not_o of_o his_o manner_n and_o if_o any_o will_v convince_v he_o by_o reason_n of_o all_o man_n he_o will_v be_v least_o obstinate_a nor_o will_v he_o refuse_v to_o burn_v his_o book_n if_o he_o shall_v be_v convince_v of_o any_o error_n in_o they_o by_o testimony_n of_o sacred_a scripture_n the_o acknowledgement_n of_o manifest_a truth_n be_v a_o excellent_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o the_o reject_v of_o it_o or_o defile_v of_o it_o with_o lie_n have_v bring_v from_o heaven_n many_o thousand_o calamity_n then_o he_o be_v command_v to_o give_v his_o answer_n in_o few_o word_n he_o answer_v i_o can_v not_o recall_v what_o i_o have_v teach_v or_o write_v unless_o i_o be_v convince_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n or_o manifest_a reason_n the_o emperor_n hear_v of_o this_o answer_n for_o he_o be_v not_o present_a nor_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n send_v they_o word_n that_o he_o will_v defend_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o use_v all_o remedy_n to_o extinguish_v that_o fire_n but_o he_o will_v not_o pronounce_v sentence_n against_o that_o man_n until_o he_o be_v safe_a at_o home_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n some_o there_o will_v have_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o constance_n and_o say_v promise_n shall_v not_o be_v keep_v unto_o heretic_n lewes_n the_o palsgrave_n elector_n do_v oppose_v say_v it_o be_v a_o perpetual_a dishonour_n unto_o the_o german_a nation_n nor_o be_v it_o tolerable_a that_o for_o favour_n of_o priest_n the_o public_a faith_n shall_v lie_v under_o that_o infamy_n some_o also_o say_v they_o shall_v not_o proceed_v so_o rash_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n nor_o do_v all_o man_n as_o yet_o perceive_v what_o may_v follow_v after_o some_o day_n the_o bishop_n of_o trever_n the_o marquis_n of_o brandeburgh_n and_o some_o other_o be_v name_v to_o deal_v with_o he_o and_o they_o exhort_v he_o to_o submit_v the_o whole_a matter_n unto_o cesar_n and_o the_o prince_n luther_n say_v the_o prophet_n say_v put_v not_o your_o trust_n in_o man_n nor_o in_o prince_n but_o especial_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o subject_a unto_o man_n if_o they_o will_v convince_v i_o by_o that_o word_n i_o will_v willing_o submit_v then_o they_o ask_v whether_o he_o will_v submit_v unto_o a_o general_n council_n yes_o say_v he_o if_o they_o rule_v themselves_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o remedy_n say_v they_o think_v you_o may_v there_o be_v in_o such_o a_o deplore_a case_n he_o answer_v i_o know_v no_o better_o than_o that_o of_o gamaliel_n if_o this_o counsel_n or_o work_n be_v of_o man_n it_o will_v turn_v to_o nought_o but_o if_o it_o be_v of_o god_n you_o can_v destroy_v it_o lest_o you_o be_v find_v to_o fight_v against_o god_n and_o i_o wish_v the_o pope_n will_v follow_v this_o advice_n for_o certain_o his_o purpose_n if_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n will_v short_o he_o bring_v to_o nothing_o the_o bishop_n of_o trever_n deal_v with_o he_o private_o but_o he_o continue_v in_o that_o assertion_n that_o this_o cause_n can_v be_v rule_v no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n then_o he_o be_v command_v to_o be_v at_o home_o within_o 21_o day_n and_o in_o his_o way_n he_o shall_v not_o provoke_v the_o people_n by_o teach_v nor_o write_v he_o give_v thanks_o unto_o caesar_n and_o the_o prince_n and_o go_v away_o aprile_a 26._o on_o may_v 8._o a_o decree_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n wherein_o be_v declare_v what_o be_v do_v with_o luther_n both_o be_v rome_n and_o worm_n and_o that_o he_o continue_v obstinate_a in_o damn_a heresy_n and_o therefore_o all_o man_n shall_v take_v he_o for_o such_o a_o one_o and_o after_o 21_o day_n none_n defend_v nor_o lodge_v he_o but_o rather_o take_v and_o imprison_v he_o and_o take_v all_o the_o moveable_n and_o immovables_n of_o all_o his_o favourer_n and_o abettor_n and_o none_o shall_v read_v nor_o have_v nor_o print_n any_o of_o his_o book_n but_o burn_v they_o etc._n etc._n this_o decree_n do_v more_o good_a unto_o the_o emperor_n than_o harm_n unto_o the_o cause_n for_o soon_o after_o the_o pope_n break_v his_o league_n with_o france_n and_o receive_v charles_n into_o his_o bosom_n as_o for_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o it_o appear_v by_o a_o epistle_n of_o erasmus_n date_v basil_n 3_o non_fw-la septemb_n an._n 1522._o saying_n i_o be_v ever_o of_o this_o mind_n this_o tragedy_n can_v not_o be_v calm_v any_o better_a way_n than_o by_o silence_n and_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o most_o prudent_a among_o the_o cardinal_n and_o prince_n a_o most_o cruel_a bull_n come_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o it_o do_v nothing_o but_o stir_v up_o the_o fire_n another_o more_o cruel_a edict_n come_v from_o caesar_n who_o be_v altogether_o prone_a that_o way_n and_o that_o restrain_v the_o tongue_n and_o penn_n of_o some_o but_o change_v not_o their_o mind_n some_o commend_v his_o pious_a mind_n but_o they_o say_v his_o judgement_n follow_v such_o as_o the_o learned_a man_n do_v not_o much_o value_n so_o far_o he_o it_o be_v true_a luther_n be_v force_v to_o hide_v himself_o for_o a_o time_n but_o be_v not_o idle_a and_o after_o this_o diet_n many_o do_v contrary_a unto_o the_o edict_n even_o in_o worm_n aftet_fw-la they_o have_v see_v the_o constancy_n of_o luther_n and_o his_o warrant_n they_o receive_v the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o be_v cause_n they_o can_v not_o have_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n they_o set_v up_o a_o portable_a pulpite_n and_o hear_v the_o preacher_n in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o town_n until_o the_o year_n 1525._o when_v all_o the_o priest_n run_v away_o for_o fearin_fw-mi time_n of_o the_o rural_a tumult_n and_o then_o the_o religion_n be_v set_v up_o in_o all_o the_o church_n in_o erford_n begin_v to_o preach_v john_n lang_n george_n forchem_n john_n culschamer_n peter_n geldner_n melchior_n wedman_n and_o justus_n menius_n who_o have_v be_v priest_n the_o number_n of_o believer_n be_v so_o multiply_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1523._o eight_o church_n can_v not_o contain_v they_o brief_o the_o like_a be_v do_v in_o goslaria_n a_o imperial_a city_n of_o saxony_n at_o halberstad_n hamburgh_n in_o pomerland_n liveland_n etc._n etc._n as_o schultet_n in_o annal._n show_v particular_o and_o in_o many_o of_o these_o place_n the_o preacher_n be_v kill_v by_o poison_n or_o open_a violence_n by_o the_o priest_n and_o their_o abetter_n but_o to_o their_o great_a wo._n in_o low-germany_n alone_o in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o emperor_n more_o than_o fifty_o thousand_o person_n be_v behead_v or_o drown_v hang_v bury_v
the_o next_o year_n they_o be_v both_o put_v out_o by_o the_o vicar_n of_o spira_n and_o bucer_n go_v to_o strawsburgh_n in_o the_o country_n of_o greichga_n by_o the_o river_n neccan_n many_o town_n receive_v preacher_n henry_n sutphan_n a_o augustinian_a have_v escape_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o inquisitour_n in_o antwerp_n go_v to_o breme_n and_o preach_v in_o s._n ansgarie_n church_n which_o the_o canon_n have_v leave_v because_o a_o man_n have_v be_v kill_v in_o it_o the_o clergy_n see_v the_o people_n follow_v his_o preach_n do_v complain_v unto_o the_o magistrate_n and_o then_o unto_o the_o bishop_n but_o sutphan_n defend_v his_o doctrine_n by_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o promise_v to_o surcease_v if_o they_o shall_v convince_v he_o of_o error_n so_o the_o magistrate_n maintain_v he_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n go_v a_o long_a to_o magdeburgh_n stetin_n sund_n in_o pomer_n to_o riga_n derbat_n and_o reval_n in_o liveland_n to_o scaphusen_n berna_n s._n gall_n in_o helvetia_n to_o dantsick_a vienna_n ulma_n wila_n creilsheim_n cothuse_n arnstat_fw-la etc._n etc._n from_o delft_n in_o holland_n friderik_n canirm_v write_v unto_o caspar_n hedio_fw-la then_o in_o mentz_n say_v the_o adversary_n do_v attempt_n much_o by_o their_o mandate_n letter_n and_o message_n but_o god_n infatuate_v the_o counsel_n of_o achitophel_n and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o monte_fw-la parturiente_fw-la nascatur_fw-la ridiculus_fw-la mus_fw-la this_o i_o know_v that_o if_o we_o have_v liberty_n to_o preach_v in_o public_a the_o monk_n which_o be_v bitter_a against_o the_o truth_n will_v turn_v to_o nothing_o for_o their_o credit_n be_v go_v already_o by_o a_o few_o preach_n in_o the_o school_n but_o we_o must_v patient_o wait_v upon_o the_o will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o when_o he_o see_v that_o we_o be_v so_o earnest_a do_v purposely_o delay_v to_o help_v lest_o we_o sacrifice_v unto_o our_o net_n and_o take_v the_o praise_n unto_o ourselves_o if_o every_o thing_n go_v on_o smooth_o he_o have_v respect_n not_o only_o of_o they_o which_o be_v to_o be_v call_v that_o they_o may_v be_v bring_v unto_o grace_n but_o likewise_o of_o they_o that_o be_v call_v that_o they_o may_v continue_v in_o grace_n but_o when_o he_o shall_v see_v we_o give_v over_o or_o despair_v of_o salvation_n unto_o israel_n and_o to_o be_v altogether_o doubtful_a then_o that_o he_o alone_o may_v be_v see_v to_o work_v on_o the_o earth_n he_o will_v help_v his_o church_n unexpected_o that_o unto_o he_o alone_o may_v be_v praise_n and_o glory_n amen_n i_o be_o very_o sorry_a that_o erasmus_n become_v cold_a daily_o and_o so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v judge_v he_o retrait_n indirect_o what_o he_o do_v seem_v to_o have_v write_v and_o speak_v free_o and_o i_o perceive_v his_o childish_a fear_n in_o respect_v the_o honour_n of_o man_n more_o than_o of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v many_o such_o nicodemuse_n with_o we_o but_o certain_o they_o will_v stand_v more_o stout_o if_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n who_o only_o do_v strengthen_v weak_a conscience_n be_v public_o preach_v abr._n schultet_fw-la annâl_n 15._o in_o that_o summer_n luther_n publish_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o dutch_a other_o opposition_n by_o other_o language_n and_o a_o book_n against_o the_o false_o name_v order_n of_o bishop_n there_o he_o accuse_v they_o for_o condemn_v and_o persecute_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n howbeit_o when_o he_o have_v so_o oft_o provoke_v they_o to_o dispute_v they_o can_v neither_o oppugn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o defend_v their_o popish_a error_n he_o tell_v that_o they_o will_v not_o come_v to_o speed_v with_o their_o tyranny_n for_o he_o regard_v not_o the_o papal_a curse_n nor_o the_o cesarean_a edict_n that_o for_o they_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v the_o profession_n of_o truth_n but_o the_o rather_o shall_v it_o spread_v through_o the_o world_n and_o he_o endeavour_v to_o do_v it_o the_o more_o hearty_o because_o that_o they_o rage_n so_o cruel_o neither_o shall_v the_o gospel_n fail_v albeit_o he_o be_v kill_v but_o god_n will_v punish_v they_o grievous_o if_o they_o will_v continue_v in_o their_o fury_n when_o the_o bb_n abbot_n and_o monk_n hear_v of_o this_o book_n and_o of_o the_o dutch_a new_a testament_n they_o be_v the_o more_o enrage_a and_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_v they_o can_v to_o have_v luther_n book_n burn_v and_o in_o some_o place_n they_o prevail_v as_o in_o wittenberg_n ferdinand_n the_o emperor_n brother_n the_o lawful_a duke_n be_v exile_v put_v in_o execution_n the_o edict_n of_o worm_n and_o in_o november_n put_v many_o to_o death_n as_o also_o henry_n duke_n of_o brunswike_n george_n duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o philip_n bishop_n of_o frisinga_n &_o naumburgh_n be_v violent_a against_o all_o have_v any_o of_o luther_n book_n likewise_o erasmus_n send_v a_o letter_n unto_o jodoc_n precedent_n of_o the_o senate_n of_o mechline_n date_v basil_n pride_n jd._n jul._n an._n 1522._o saying_n here_o and_o there_o i_o have_v turn_v away_o partly_o by_o my_o word_n and_o partly_o by_o epistle_n many_o from_o luther_n faction_n nor_o do_v any_o thing_n so_o much_o discourage_v the_o lutheran_n affection_n as_o that_o i_o have_v declare_v plain_o by_o my_o divulge_a book_n that_o i_o do_v cleave_v unto_o the_o roman_a pope_n and_o do_v disallow_a luther_n business_n scultet_fw-la write_v that_o pope_n hadrian_n have_v exhort_v erasmus_n to_o employ_v his_o pen_n against_o luther_n xvi_o we_o have_v hear_v before_o in_o part_n what_o pope_n hadrian_n have_v write_v 1523._o the_o diet_n at_o norenhergh_n an._n 1522_o &_o 1523._o unto_o the_o diet_n of_o the_o german_a prince_n at_o norinbergh_n in_o november_n an._n 1522_o now_o hear_v their_o answer_n they_o say_v unto_o the_o legate_n they_o have_v with_o all_o reverence_n read_v the_o pope_n brieve_n and_o hear_v his_o command_n against_o the_o lutheran_n they_o give_v god_n thanks_o that_o his_o blessedness_n be_v come_v into_o that_o see_v and_o unto_o he_o they_o wish_v all_o happiness_n and_o after_o they_o have_v speak_v of_o their_o unanimity_n to_o join_v in_o war_n against_o the_o turk_n they_o say_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o execute_v the_o ordinance_n against_o the_o lutheran_n and_o to_o root_v out_o all_o error_n but_o for_o weighty_a cause_n they_o have_v delay_v because_o many_o have_v understand_v by_o luther_n book_n how_o germany_n be_v oppress_v many_o and_o grievous_a way_n by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o if_o they_o have_v attempt_v to_o execute_v that_o edict_n many_o will_v have_v think_v that_o they_o be_v confirm_v all_o these_o vexation_n and_o thence_o have_v certain_o a_o popular_a tumult_n arisen_a even_o open_a rebellion_n and_o civil_a war_n wherefore_o in_o such_o difficulty_n it_o be_v safe_a to_o use_v soft_a cure_n and_o see_v the_o legate_n have_v confess_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o those_o misery_n and_o he_o promise_v to_o reform_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o if_o these_o abuse_n be_v not_o amend_v and_o the_o grievance_n remove_v with_o other_o which_o the_o prince_n will_v now_o propound_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o calm_v the_o present_a broil_n or_o to_o settle_v peace_n again_o especial_o see_v germany_n have_v consent_v unto_o the_o payment_n of_o annates_fw-la express_o on_o condition_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v employ_v in_o war_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o these_o have_v be_v pay_v for_o many_o year_n and_o never_o apply_v unto_o that_o use_n they_o entreat_v that_o the_o roman_a court_n will_v permit_v that_o money_n be_v bring_v in_o to_o the_o imperial_a chamber_n for_o that_o use_n and_o where_o he_o crave_v their_o counsel_n for_o heall_v the_o present_a and_o imminent_a malady_n they_o think_v they_o have_v not_o to_o do_v with_o luther_n alone_o but_o to_o root_v up_o many_o vice_n that_o be_v fester_v by_o long_a custom_n and_o which_o some_o through_o imprudence_n and_o other_o through_o impudence_n do_v defend_v therefore_o they_o see_v not_o a_o more_o expedient_a and_o efficacious_a way_n then_o if_o a_o godly_a and_o free_a council_n be_v call_v with_o the_o emperor_n consent_n in_o some_o convenient_a part_n of_o germany_n so_o soon_o as_o possible_a and_o at_o far_a within_o a_o year_n and_o there_o must_v it_o be_v lawful_a unto_o all_o both_o laic_a and_o ecclesiastical_a person_n to_o advise_v and_o pronounce_v free_o without_o danger_n of_o any_o oath_n or_o former_a tie_n but_o so_o far_o as_o be_v expedient_a for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n etc._n etc._n the_o legate_n repli_v that_o excuse_n of_o delay_v the_o edict_n be_v but_o weak_a for_o albeit_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o scandal_n may_v have_v arisen_a yet_o evil_a thing_n may_v not_o be_v
council_n for_o a_o long_a time_n and_o many_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v reform_v both_o in_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n the_o emperor_n will_v deal_v with_o the_o high_a bishop_n that_o a_o council_n shall_v be_v summon_v within_o a_o half_a year_n and_o begin_v within_o a_o year_n after_o unto_o this_o decree_n the_o duke_n and_o his_o colleague_n after_o consultation_n reply_v by_o his_o lawyer_n pontan_n they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o their_o confession_n be_v refute_v by_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o they_o will_v have_v demonstrate_v if_o a_o copy_n of_o that_o which_o be_v call_v a_o refutation_n have_v be_v give_v they_o and_o so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v remember_v by_o their_o hear_n of_o it_o read_v they_o have_v write_v a_o reply_n which_o if_o the_o emperor_n will_v be_v please_v to_o read_v he_o shall_v find_v that_o their_o religion_n be_v sure_a and_o unmovable_a and_o where_o as_o they_o be_v command_v to_o print_v nothing_o nor_o change_v any_o more_o they_o will_v do_v nothing_o whereof_o they_o may_v be_v just_o accuse_v as_o for_o anabaptist_n and_o such_o as_o despise_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n none_o such_o have_v place_n within_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o because_o the_o decree_n contain_v sundry_a thing_n of_o weight_n they_o crave_v copy_n of_o it_o that_o at_o the_o time_n they_o may_v give_v the_o more_o advise_v answer_n they_o do_v present_v the_o apology_n but_o caesar_n will_v not_o accept_v it_o and_o the_o next_o day_n he_o threaten_v they_o sharp_o if_o they_o do_v not_o obey_v the_o decree_n so_o these_o prince_n go_v away_o leave_v their_o deputy_n behind_o they_o and_o have_v crave_v and_o obtain_v leave_n when_o they_o begin_v to_o treat_v in_o the_o diet_n concern_v the_o war_n these_o deputy_n do_v in_o name_n of_o their_o principal_n promise_v to_o contribute_v their_o aid_n against_o the_o turk_n if_o peace_n shall_v be_v grant_v unto_o religion_n about_o the_o first_o of_o october_n a_o sharp_a decree_n be_v read_v against_o the_o city_n which_o have_v given-in_a the_o other_o confession_n final_o a_o three_o decree_n concern_v religion_n be_v read_v to_o this_o sense_n caesar_n ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v tolerate_v which_o teach_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n otherwise_o than_o have_v be_v receive_v heretofore_o let_v nothing_o be_v change_v in_o private_a or_o public_a mass_n let_v child_n be_v confirm_v with_o oil_n and_o the_o sick_a be_v anoint_v with_o consecrate_v oil_n image_n &_o statue_n shall_v not_o be_v remove_v and_o where_o they_o have_v be_v take_v away_o they_o shall_v be_v set_v up_o again_o their_o opinion_n which_o deny_v the_o freewill_n of_o man_n may_v not_o be_v receive_v for_o it_o be_v beastly_a and_o contumelious_a against_o god_n let_v nothing_o be_v teach_v which_o do_v any_o way_n impair_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n that_o opinion_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v keep_v the_o sacrament_n in_o their_o place_n &_o number_n as_o before_o keep_v still_o all_o the_o cetemony_n of_o the_o church_n all_o the_o rite_n the_o manner_n of_o burial_n and_o such_o other_o priesthood_n vacant_a shall_v be_v bestow_v on_o qualify_a person_n the_o priest_n and_o churchman_n that_o be_v marry_v shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o their_o benefice_n which_o shall_v be_v bestow_v on_o other_o and_o if_o any_o will_v put_v away_o his_o wife_n and_o crave_v absolution_n at_o the_o will_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o bb_n may_v restore_v such_o and_o all_o other_o shall_v have_v no_o refuge_n but_o be_v exile_v or_o suffer_v other_o deserve_a punishment_n let_v the_o life_n of_o priest_n be_v honest_a their_o clothes_n comely_a and_o eschew_v all_o offence_n ....._o brief_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n let_v nothing_o be_v change_v whoever_o do_v contrary_o shall_v under_o the_o danger_n of_o body_n life_n and_o good_n jo._n sleida_o lib._n 7._o these_o decree_n be_v grievous_a unto_o many_o namely_o melanthon_n give_v himself_o to_o weep_v be_v pensive_a not_o so_o much_o as_o he_o profess_v for_o himself_o for_o he_o know_v what_o he_o believe_v as_o for_o the_o posterity_n when_o luther_n understand_v this_o he_o comfort_n melanthon_n luther_n consolatory_a unto_o melanthon_n he_o by_o letter_n that_o see_v it_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n all_o the_o burden_n shall_v be_v cast_v on_o he_o why_o then_o do_v thou_o say_v he_o afflict_v and_o torment_v thyself_o fe_v god_n have_v give_v his_o son_n for_o we_o why_o do_v we_o tremble_v or_o fear_v why_o do_v we_o sigh_v be_v satan_n strong_a than_o god_n will_v he_o who_o have_v give_v so_o great_a a_o benefit_n forsake_v we_o in_o light_a matter_n why_o shall_v we_o fear_v the_o world_n which_o christ_n have_v overcome_v if_o we_o defend_v a_o ill_a cause_n why_o do_v we_o not_o change_v if_o the_o cause_n be_v just_a and_o pious_a why_o do_v we_o not_o trust_v to_o god_n promise_n certain_o satan_n can_v take_v no_o more_o from_o we_o but_o our_o life_n but_o christ_n reign_v for_o ever_o under_o who_o protection_n verity_n consist_v he_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v with_o we_o until_o the_o end_n if_o he_o be_v not_o with_o we_o i_o beseech_v where_o shall_v he_o be_v find_v if_o we_o be_v not_o of_o his_o church_n do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n &_o our_o adversary_n be_v of_o it_o we_o be_v sinner_n indeed_o many_o way_n but_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o liar_n who_o cause_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n let_v king_n and_o nation_n ●reat_a &_o foam_n as_o they_o please_v he_o that_o sit_v in_o heaven_n shall_v laugh_v they_o to_o scorn_v god_n have_v maintain_v his_o cause_n hithertil_v without_o our_o counsel_n and_o so_o he_o will_v do_v unto_o the_o end_n ....._o as_o for_o any_o agreement_n it_o be_v vain_a to_o look_v for_o it_o for_o neither_o can_v we_o deprive_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o can_v the_o true_a doctrine_n be_v in_o security_n while_o popery_n shall_v endure_v if_o they_o condemn_v our_o doctrine_n why_o seek_v we_o a_o uniformity_n if_o they_o allow_v it_o why_o maintain_v they_o their_o old_a error_n but_o they_o condemn_v it_o open_o where_o before_o it_o be_v but_o dissimulation_n &_o falsehood_n whatsoever_o they_o go_v about_o in_o that_o you_o will_v have_v the_o lord_n supper_n communicate_v whole_o and_o give_v no_o place_n to_o they_o which_o hold_v in_o indifferent_a you_o do_v well_o for_o ....._o they_o cry_v that_o we_o condemn_v all_o the_o church_n but_o we_o show_v how_o the_o church_n be_v violent_o oppress_v by_o tyranny_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v excuse_v as_o the_o synagogue_n be_v to_o be_v excuse_v when_o under_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n they_o keep_v not_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n see_v they_o be_v prohibit_v by_o force_n ibid._n xxviii_o when_o the_o protestant_n understand_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v write_v 1531._o the_o prostant_n write_v to_o foreign_a king_n 1531._o against_o they_o unto_o several_a king_n they_o in_o febr._n 1531._o assemble_v at_o smalcald_a and_o send_v their_o letter_n unto_o the_o same_o king_n show_v that_o it_o be_v a_o old_a complaint_n of_o good_a man_n that_o they_o be_v traduce_v by_o their_o enemy_n as_o nic._n clemangis_n in_o france_n jo._n colet_fw-la in_o england_n &c_n &c_n and_o where_o as_o now_o they_o be_v traduce_v by_o their_o enemy_n and_o they_o declare_v what_o be_v do_v at_o ausburg_n they_o be_v guilty_a of_o none_o of_o these_o crime_n that_o be_v lay_v unto_o their_o charge_n as_o they_o doubt_v not_o to_o clear_v themselves_o if_o there_o be_v a_o free_a general_a council_n and_o especial_o it_o be_v grievous_a unto_o they_o that_o they_o be_v say_v to_o condemn_v magistracy_n and_o law_n ....._o and_o they_o entreat_v they_o that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v such_o calumny_n and_o to_o entreat_v caesar_n that_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n he_o will_v call_v a_o godly_a and_o free_a council_n in_o germany_n where_o such_o controversy_n may_v be_v lawful_o debate_v and_o define_v rather_o than_o put_v they_o to_o fire_n and_o sword_n the_o king_n of_o france_n return_v they_o answer_v thank_v they_o for_o empart_v such_o a_o business_n rejoice_v that_o they_o do_v purge_v themselves_o of_o the_o object_v crime_n and_o allow_v their_o demand_n of_o a_o council_n as_o necessary_a for_o the_o good_a not_o of_o germany_n only_o but_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n write_v the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o add_v that_o he_o earnest_o wish_v there_o be_v a_o council_n and_o that_o he_o will_v intercede_v with_o caesar_n for_o peace_n at_o that_o time_n many_o protestant_n be_v summon_v to_o appear_v before_o the_o chamber_n of_o
of_o the_o protestant_a prince_n come_v thither_o but_o the_o landgrave_n only_o they_o send_v their_o orator_n the_o emperor_n call_v this_o a_o contempt_n of_o his_o authority_n he_o show_v his_o care_n for_o establish_v peace_n in_o germany_n and_o press_v they_o absolute_o unto_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n the_o orator_n beseech_v the_o emperor_n that_o he_o will_v not_o violat_a the_o former_a peace_n as_o they_o refuse_v no_o charge_n nor_o service_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o empire_n nor_o have_v any_o thought_n to_o do_v otherwise_o in_o time_n come_v as_o for_o religion_n see_v the_o council_n be_v not_o such_o as_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o the_o state_n have_v decree_v they_o humble_o entreat_v that_o it_o may_v be_v yet_o refer_v unto_o a_o council_n of_o germany_n or_o a_o conference_n of_o learned_a man_n which_o will_v determine_v thereof_o according_a to_o the_o write_a word_n while_o they_o make_v such_o a_o show_n of_o consolation_n it_o be_v public_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n ferdinand_n be_v levy_v soldier_n then_o the_o landgrave_n and_o orator_n entreat_v the_o other_o prince_n that_o they_o will_v go_v with_o they_o unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o solicit_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o war_v against_o they_o the_o prince_n refuse_v and_o the_o emperor_n still_o profess_v peace_n with_o they_o as_o his_o love_a subject_n the_o landgrave_n enquire_v for_o what_o cause_n be_v the_o levy_n of_o soldier_n every_o where_o see_v he_o profess_v universal_a peace_n and_o he_o have_v truce_n with_o the_o turk_n he_o reply_v at_o last_o he_o aim_v at_o nothing_o but_o the_o peace_n of_o germany_n and_o all_o who_o will_v give_v due_a obedience_n may_v look_v for_o favour_n from_o i_o say_v he_o but_o against_o other_o which_o will_v not_o obey_v i_o must_v deal_v according_a to_o my_o right_n brief_o cruel_a war_n follow_v the_o protestant_n at_o the_o first_o prevail_v and_o cause_v the_o papist_n town_n and_o bb_n give_v they_o money_n they_o dispossess_v maurice_n duke_n of_o saxony_n who_o be_v a_o protestant_n in_o religion_n but_o a_o commander_n for_o the_o emperor_n because_o he_o trust_v the_o emperor_n that_o the_o war_n be_v undertake_v for_o civil_a authority_n only_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o landgrave_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n at_o that_o time_n and_o their_o different_a judgement_n make_v they_o lose_v many_o good_a advantage_n and_o in_o the_o end_n they_o be_v both_o take_v as_o be_v before_o relate_v in_o the_o diet_n at_o ulm_n ann._n 1547._o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o state_n bewail_v the_o great_a damnage_n that_o have_v befall_v unto_o they_o all_o by_o these_o intestine_a war_n and_o they_o crave_v peace_n the_o emperor_n profess_v readiness_n but_o because_o of_o the_o pestilence_n the_o treaty_n of_o peace_n be_v defer_v to_o a_o more_o solemn_a meeting_n at_o augsburg_n where_o the_o emperor_n appoint_v some_o bb_n and_o other_o prelate_n to_o pen_v some_o article_n of_o doctrine_n concern_v ceremony_n and_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n these_o deputy_n write_v a_o little_a book_n all_o romish_a excep_v that_o they_o permit_v marriage_n unto_o priest_n and_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n the_o emperor_n take_v this_o course_n because_o he_o can_v not_o bring_v about_o his_o purpose_n in_o the_o council_n he_o propound_v this_o book_n in_o the_o diet_n and_o cause_v some_o to_o dispute_v the_o article_n there_o and_o then_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o pope_n write_v back_o that_o none_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v authority_n to_o permit_v such_o liberty_n and_o immediate_o he_o seek_v to_o dissolve_v the_o council_n by_o transfer_v it_o xxxvi_o in_o may_n 1548._o the_o emperor_n assemble_v the_o state_n at_o augsburg_n interim_n trouble_n for_o the_o interim_n and_o ordain_v that_o these_o which_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o make_v defection_n shall_v continue_v in_o former_a obedience_n and_o condition_n of_o religion_n and_o unto_o other_o he_o say_v see_v some_o well_o affection_a man_n and_o lover_n of_o tranquillity_n have_v propound_v unto_o i_o a_o book_n of_o article_n which_o we_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v examine_v we_o will_v you_o as_o you_o regard_v the_o good_a of_o the_o commonwealth_n to_o accept_v these_o article_n and_o approve_v your_o teach_n thereby_o until_o a_o full_a remedy_n be_v provide_v by_o a_o general_a council_n the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n as_o if_o all_o the_o rest_n have_v give_v he_o their_o voice_n give_v in_o name_n of_o all_o the_o state_n unto_o the_o emperor_n immortal_a thanks_o for_o his_o zeal_n and_o care_n and_o he_o promise_v to_o obey_v the_o emperor_n take_v this_o answer_n as_o a_o universal_a consent_n and_o will_v hear_v no_o excuse_n from_o any_o other_o he_o command_v it_o to_o be_v print_v in_o dutch_n and_o latin_a it_o be_v call_v the_o interim_n john_n marquis_n of_o brandeburgh_n go_v unto_o the_o emperor_n lodging_n and_o say_v that_o he_o have_v serve_v he_o heretofore_o upon_o this_o affiance_n that_o he_o have_v assure_v he_o of_o liberty_n of_o religion_n the_o emperor_n say_v this_o be_v a_o general_a decree_n nor_o can_v any_o be_v against_o it_o the_o marquis_n begin_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o contrary_a but_o the_o emperor_n command_v he_o to_o be_v go_v lest_o he_o give_v a_o bad_a example_n unto_o other_o to_o refuse_v the_o book_n and_o he_o go_v home_o the_o same_o day_n but_o change_v nothing_o in_o religion_n the_o elector_n palatine_n &_o brandeburgh_n accept_v the_o book_n wolfgang_n duke_n of_o bipont_n refuse_v it_o with_o great_a boldness_n ulric_n duke_n of_o witembergh_n will_v not_o accept_v it_o for_o his_o person_n but_o because_o the_o spanish_a soldier_n be_v quarter_v in_o his_o land_n for_o the_o time_n he_o give_v leave_v to_o use_v it_o yet_o the_o priest_n be_v not_o regard_v there_o so_o that_o within_o a_o short_a space_n they_o leave_v his_o land_n again_o the_o emperor_n send_v granvellan_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o artois_n unto_o the_o captive_a duke_n of_o saxony_n with_o some_o hope_n of_o liberty_n if_o he_o will_v approve_v the_o book_n he_o say_v he_o coul_n not_o accept_v it_o unless_o he_o will_v wound_v his_o conscience_n and_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n see_v it_o contain_v many_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n after_o that_o he_o be_v keep_v more_o straight_o and_o his_o preacher_n for_o fear_n change_v his_o habit_n and_o leave_v he_o the_o emperor_n send_v also_o unto_o the_o duke_n two_o son_n and_o they_o also_o refuse_v the_o book_n then_o he_o complain_v unto_o the_o duke_n that_o his_o son_n will_v not_o obey_v the_o decree_n and_o they_o suffer_v the_o preacher_n to_o speak_v and_o write_v aguin_v the_o book_n and_o therefore_o he_o shall_v cause_v they_o satisfy_v he_o the_o duke_n return_v answer_v see_v he_o himself_o approve_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o book_n he_o can_v not_o advise_v his_o son_n to_o receive_v it_o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o town_n seek_v some_o space_n of_o time_n to_o communicate_v with_o their_o principales_fw-la ere_o they_o give_v answer_v the_o last_o day_n of_o juny_n be_v grant_v unto_o they_o some_o for_o fear_n do_v accept_v it_o and_o other_o accept_v it_o with_o some_o exception_n some_o return_v answer_v see_v the_o emperor_n press_v this_o as_o a_o imperial_a decree_n they_o will_v refuse_v no_o proportionable_a burden_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o this_o particular_a concern_v their_o soul_n and_o the_o burden_n thereof_o lie_v upon_o the_o godly_a people_n so_o many_o as_o be_v careless_a of_o religion_n care_v not_o what_o be_v decree_v they_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o emperor_n love_v peace_n yet_o if_o man_n be_v compel_v to_o speak_v and_o practice_v against_o conscience_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o such_o decree_n shall_v raise_v great_a trouble_n nevertheless_o the_o emperor_n press_v the_o book_n upon_o they_o by_o force_n as_o upon_o ulme_n constance_n etc._n etc._n the_o preacher_n choose_v rather_o to_o leave_v the_o town_n as_o brentius_n leave_v hala_n musculus_fw-la leave_v augsburg_n etc._n etc._n some_o be_v persuade_v to_o accept_v it_o and_o afterward_o with_o many_o tear_n confess_v their_o sin_n public_o albeit_o the_o emperor_n have_v command_v that_o none_o shall_v write_v against_o that_o interim_n yet_o many_o book_n be_v publish_v condemn_v the_o doctrine_n in_o it_o and_o admonish_a man_n to_o bewar_n of_o it_o as_o a_o most_o pernicious_a pest_n not_o only_o for_o the_o error_n of_o doctrine_n but_o likewise_o because_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o bring_v in_o whole_a popery_n again_o augsburg_n be_v compel_v to_o receive_v their_o bishop_n again_o and_o he_o will_v not_o come_v in_o until_o he_o covenant_v with_o the_o senate_n that_o he_o shall_v
preacher_n shall_v be_v place_v oppidatim_o how_o can_v it_o well_o be_v think_v that_o three_o or_o four_o preacher_n may_v suffice_v for_o a_o shire_n ......_o some_o there_o be_v that_o be_v misliker_n of_o the_o godly_a reformation_n in_o religion_n once_o establish_v wish_v indeed_o that_o there_o be_v no_o preacher_n at_o all_o and_o so_o by_o deprive_v of_o minister_n impugn_v religion_n non_fw-la aperto_fw-la marte_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o cuniculis_fw-la much_o like_o the_o bishop_n in_o your_o father_n time_n who_o will_v have_v have_v the_o english_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n called-in_a as_o evil_a translate_v and_o the_o new_a translation_n to_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o which_o they_o never_o intend_v to_o perform_v a_o number_n there_o be_v and_o that_o exceed_v great_a altogether_o worldly-minded_n ......_o and_o because_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n which_o to_o all_o christian_n conscience_n be_v sweet_a and_o delectable_a to_o they_o have_v cauterizatas_fw-la conscientias_fw-la be_v bitter_a and_o grievous_a ....._o they_o wish_v that_o there_o be_v no_o preacher_n at_o all_o but_o they_o dare_v not_o direct_o condemn_v the_o office_n of_o preach_v so_o express_o command_v by_o god_n word_n for_o that_o be_v open_a blasphemy_n they_o turn_v themselves_o altogether_o and_o with_o the_o same_o meaning_n as_o other_o do_v against_o the_o person_n of_o they_o that_o be_v admit_v to_o preach_v but_o god_n forbid_v madam_n that_o you_o shall_v open_v your_o ear_n unto_o any_o of_o these_o wicked_a persuasion_n cum_fw-la defecerit_fw-la propheta_fw-la dissipabitur_fw-la populus_fw-la say_v solomon_n prov._n 27._o where_o it_o be_v think_v that_o the_o read_n of_o godly_a homily_n set_v forth_o by_o public_a authority_n may_v suffice_v the_o read_n of_o these_o have_v its_o commodity_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o comparable_a to_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v ......_o these_o be_v devise_v by_o godly_a bishop_n in_o your_o homily_n the_o use_n of_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n brother_n day_n only_o to_o supply_v necessite_a by_o want_n of_o preacher_n and_o be_v by_o the_o statute_n not_o to_o be_v prefer_v but_o to_o give_v place_n to_o sermon_n wheresoever_o they_o may_v be_v have_v and_o be_v never_o think_v in_o themselves_o to_o contain_v alone_o sufficient_a instruction_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o it_o be_v find_v then_o as_o it_o be_v now_o that_o this_o church_n have_v be_v by_o appropriation_n not_o without_o sacrilege_n spoil_v of_o the_o live_n which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v appoint_v to_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v or_o teach_v which_o appropriation_n be_v first_o annex_v to_o abaye_v and_o after_o come_v to_o the_o crown_n and_o now_o be_v dispose_v to_o private_a man_n possession_n without_o hope_n to_o reduce_v the_o same_o to_o the_o original_a institution_n ....._o concern_v the_o second_o point_n which_o be_v of_o the_o learned_a exercise_n and_o conference_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v minister_n the_o exercise_n of_o minister_n consult_v with_o diverse_a of_o my_o brethren_n the_o bishop_n who_o think_v of_o the_o same_o as_o i_o do_v a_o thing_n profitable_a to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o expedient_a to_o be_v continue_v and_o i_o trust_v your_o majesty_n will_v think_v the_o like_a when_o you_o shall_v be_v inform_v of_o the_o matter_n and_o order_n thereof_o what_o authority_n it_o have_v of_o the_o scripture_n what_o commodity_n it_o bring_v with_o it_o and_o what_o discommodity_n will_v follow_v if_o it_o be_v clean_o take_v away_o the_o author_n of_o this_o exercise_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n where_o it_o be_v use_v who_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o canon_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n now_o in_o force_n have_v authority_n to_o appoint_v exercise_n to_o their_o inferior_a minister_n for_o increase_v of_o learning_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o to_o they_o seem_v expedient_a for_o that_o pertain_v ad_fw-la disciplinam_fw-la clericalem_fw-la so_o after_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o matter_n and_o order_n of_o that_o exercise_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o from_o 1._o sam._n 10._o and_o 1._o cor._n 14._o he_o add_v this_o gift_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n in_o s._n paul_n time_n be_v give_v to_o many_o by_o a_o special_a miracle_n without_o study_n ......_o but_o now_o miracle_n cease_v man_n must_v attain_v to_o the_o hebrew_n greek_a and_o latin_a tongue_n ......_o by_o travel_n and_o study_v god_n give_v the_o increase_n so_o must_v man_n attain_v by_o the_o like_a mean_n to_o the_o gift_n of_o expound_v and_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n and_o among_o other_o help_v nothing_o be_v so_o necessary_a as_o these_o above_o name_v exercise_n and_o conference_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n which_o in_o effect_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o exercise_n of_o student_n in_o divinity_n in_o the_o university_n save_v that_o the_o first_o be_v do_v in_o a_o tongue_n understand_v to_o the_o more_o edify_v of_o the_o unlearned_a hearer_n howsoever_o report_n have_v be_v to_o your_o majesty_n concern_v these_o exercise_n yet_o i_o and_o other_o of_o york_n who_o name_n be_v note_v as_o follow_v 1._o cantuariensis_n 2._o london_n 3._o winch_n 4._o bathon_n 5._o lichfield_n 6._o gloucester_n 7._o lincoln_n 8._o chester_n 9_o exon_n 10._o meneven_a alias_o david_n as_o they_o have_v testify_v unto_o i_o by_o their_o letter_n have_v find_v by_o experience_n that_o these_o profit_n and_o commodity_n follow_v have_v ensue_v of_o they_o 1._o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v more_o skilful_a and_o more_o ready_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o more_o apt_a to_o teach_v their_o flock_n 2._o it_o withdraw_v they_o from_o idleness_n wander_v game_a etc._n etc._n 3._o some_o afore_o suspect_v in_o doctrine_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 4._o ignorant_n minister_n be_v drive_v to_o study_v if_o not_o for_o conscience_n yet_o for_o shame_n and_o fear_n of_o discipline_n 5._o the_o opinion_n of_o lay_a man_n touch_v the_o ableness_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v hereby_o remove_v 6._o nothing_o by_o experience_n beat_v down_o popery_n more_o than_o that_o 7._o minister_n as_o some_o of_o my_o brethren_n do_v confess_v grow_v to_o such_o knowledge_n by_o mean_n of_o those_o exercise_n that_o where_o a_o fore_n be_v not_o able_a minister_n not_o three_o now_o be_v thretty_a able_a and_o meet_a to_o preach_v at_o paul_n cross_n and_o 40_o or_o 50_o beside_o able_a to_o instruct_v their_o own_o cure_n so_o as_o it_o be_v find_v by_o experience_n the_o best_a mean_n to_o increase_v knowledge_n in_o the_o simple_a and_o to_o continue_v it_o in_o the_o learned_a only_o backward_a man_n in_o religion_n and_o contemner_n of_o learning_n in_o the_o country_n abroad_o do_v fret_v against_o it_o which_o in_o truth_n do_v the_o more_o commend_v it_o the_o dissolution_n of_o it_o will_v b●eed_o triumph_v in_o the_o adversary_n and_o great_a sorrow_n and_o grief_n unto_o the_o favourer_n of_o religion_n contrary_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o ezek._n 13._o 18._o cor_fw-la justi_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la contristandum_fw-la although_o some_o have_v abuse_v this_o good_a and_o necessary_a exercise_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o the_o malice_n of_o a_o few_o shall_v prejudice_v all_o abuse_n may_v be_v reform_v and_o that_o which_o be_v good_a may_v remain_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o just_a cause_n of_o offence_n to_o be_v take_v if_o diverse_a man_n make_v diverse_a sense_n of_o one_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n so_o that_o all_o the_o sense_n be_v good_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o analogy_n and_o proportion_n of_o faith_n for_o otherwise_o we_o must_v condemn_v all_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o diverse_a of_o the_o church_n who_o most_o common_o expound_v one_o and_o the_o same_o text_n of_o scripture_n diverse_o and_o yet_o all_o to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n ...._o because_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v ....._o that_o these_o exercise_n for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o for_o exhortation_n and_o comfort_n be_v profitable_a ........._o i_o be_o enforce_v with_o all_o humility_n and_o yet_o plain_o to_o profess_v that_o i_o can_v not_o with_o safe_a conscience_n and_o without_o the_o offence_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n give_v my_o assent_n to_o the_o suppress_n of_o these_o exercise_n much_o less_o can_v i_o send_v out_o any_o injunction_n for_o the_o utter_a and_o universal_a subversion_n of_o the_o same_o i_o say_v with_o paul_n i_o have_v no_o power_n to_o destroy_v but_o only_o to_o edify_v and_o i_o can_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n but_o with_o the_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v your_o majesty_n pleasure_n or_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n to_o remove_v i_o i_o consider_v with_o myself_o quod_fw-la horrendum_fw-la est_fw-la incidere_fw-la in_o manus_fw-la dei_fw-la viventis_fw-la
bishop_n or_o benefice_a person_n whatever_o because_o it_o be_v a_o distraction_n from_o his_o vocation_n under_o pain_n of_o deprivation_n 4._o some_o article_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o lord_n regent_n namely_o that_o stipend_n be_v grant_v unto_o a_o superintendent_n in_o every_o province_n whither_o it_o be_v where_o no_o bishop_n be_v or_o whe●e_o be_v a_o bishop_n who_o can_v not_o dischage_v his_o office_n as_o santandrews_n glasgow_n that_o in_o every_o church_n destitute_a of_o a_o minister_n such_o person_n may_v be_v present_v and_o stipend_n be_v grant_v unto_o they_o as_o be_v here_o present_a and_o who_o name_n shall_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o bb._n superint_fw-la or_o commissioner_n 5._o a_o complaint_n be_v make_v against_o the_o bishop_n of_o dunkell_n for_o ministration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n upon_o wo●k-dayes_n and_o he_o be_v forbid_v to_o do_v so_o again_o but_o only_o upon_o the_o lord_n day_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o other_o church_n 6._o if_o any_o parliament_n shall_v be_v call_v or_o any_o other_o weighty_a cause_n require_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o assembly_n the_o superintendent_n of_o lothian_n james_n lowson_n minister_n at_o edinburgh_n and_o david_n lindsay_n minister_n at_o lie_v shall_v give_v timous_a premonition_n unto_o the_o brethren_n to_o conveen_v and_o that_o convention_n shall_v be_v repute_v a_o assembly_n 7._o the_o absent_v from_o the_o assembly_n shall_v be_v charge_v to_o compear_v in_o the_o next_o to_o be_v censure_v for_o their_o absence_n note_v 1._o james_n boyd_n be_v enduce_v by_o the_o lord_n boyd_n to_o accept_v the_o title_n of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o glasgow_n which_o that_o lord_n have_v purchase_v for_o his_o own_o gain_n of_o the_o revenue_n and_o in_o the_o former_a act_n he_o be_v name_v as_o unable_a unto_o the_o office_n and_o in_o the_o same_o assembly_n he_o excuse_v his_o negligence_n in_o the_o church-affaire_n because_o he_o be_v employ_v in_o other_o affair_n of_o that_o office_n 2._o within_o some_o week_n after_o that_o assembly_n john_n call_v archbishop_n of_o santandrews_n go_v into_o the_o pulpit_n topreach_n and_o fall_v down_o die_v 3._o by_o a_o act_n under_o the_o privy_a signet_n of_o the_o date_n november_n 21._o 1574._o it_o appear_v that_o john_n erskin_n so_o long_o as_o he_o have_v be_v superintendent_n have_v not_o be_v in_o the_o shiref-court_n though_o he_o be_v a_o baron_n and_o at_o that_o time_n have_v exemption_n grant_v both_o for_o time_n by_o past_a and_o to_o come_v during_o his_o continuance_n in_o that_o office_n xii_o the_o national_a assembly_n conveene_n at_o edinb_n march_n 7._o as_o they_o assembly_n 1575._o the_o 28._o assembly_n then_o do_v reckon_v year_n 1574._o where_o be_v earl_n lord_n bb_n superindent_n etc._n etc._n james_n boyd_n bishop_n of_o glasgow_n be_v choose_v moderator_n 1._o the_o bb_n of_o dunkell_n brechin_n murray_n and_o of_o glasgow_n be_v remove_v and_o complaint_n make_v against_o every_o one_o of_o they_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o galloway_n now_o submit_v himself_o upon_o his_o submission_n and_o by_o solicitation_n of_o the_o lord_n regent_n he_o obtain_v dispensation_n to_o be_v accept_v if_o he_o will_v confesle_v his_o offence_n in_o the_o church_n of_o halirudhouse_n only_o 2._o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o none_o be_v admit_v unto_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n unless_o he_o be_v examine_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o assembly_n 3._o no_o comedy_n nor_o tragoedy_n or_o such_o play_n shall_v be_v make_v on_o any_o history_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n nor_o on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n if_o any_o minister_n be_v the_o writer_n of_o such_o a_o play_n he_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o his_o ministry_n as_o for_o play_n of_o another_o subject_n they_o also_o shall_v be_v examine_v before_o they_o be_v propound_v public_o 3._o whereas_o andrew_n graham_n have_v be_v present_v unto_o the_o bishopric_n of_o dunblain_n undet_fw-la the_o name_n of_o a_o preacher_n albeit_o he_o be_v not_o one_o and_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o conclusion_n that_o all_o bb._n shall_v first_o be_v preacher_n and_o so_o if_o he_o be_v qualify_v to_o be_v a_o preacher_n the_o presentation_n shall_v be_v accept_v therefore_o the_o assembly_n appoint_v he_o to_o preach_v on_o wednesday_n upon_o rom._n 5._o 1._o and_o name_v certain_a person_n to_o be_v present_a 4._o bishop_n superintendent_o and_o every_o minister_n be_v enjoin_v to_o admonish_v all_o such_o as_o be_v papist_n within_o their_o bound_n and_o have_v subscribe_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o they_o shall_v also_o participate_v of_o the_o sacrament_n due_o with_o their_o own_o congregation_n under_o pain_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v hold_v relapse_n and_o be_v censure_v with_o excommunication_n it_o may_v appear_v from_o these_o what_o manner_n of_o bishop_n these_o be_v and_o that_o the_o presenter_n of_o they_o aim_v at_o their_o own_o advantadge_n and_o not_o at_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o assembly_n at_o edinburgh_n august_n 6._o be_v assembly_n the_o 29._o assembly_n bb._n superintendent_o etc._n etc._n robert_n pont_n be_v choose_v moderator_n 1_o when_o bb._n be_v remove_v to_o be_v censure_v john_n dury_n minister_n at_o edinburgh_n protest_v that_o the_o trial_n of_o bishop_n shall_v not_o prejudge_v the_o opinion_n and_o reason_n which_o he_o and_o other_o brethren_n have_v against_o the_o office_n of_o such_o bishop_n 2._o alexander_n bishop_n of_o galloway_n deliver_v a_o attestation_n of_o his_o satisfaction_n according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n he_o be_v restore_v to_o the_o liberty_n of_o preach_v and_o stand_v still_o suspend_v from_o commission_n of_o visitation_n but_o be_v order_v to_o assist_v john_n row_n commissioner_n of_o galloway_n pro_fw-la hac_fw-la vice_n 3._o the_o bishop_n of_o dunkell_n be_v ordain_v to_o reside_v with_o his_o family_n at_o dunkell_n before_o the_o next_o assembly_n under_o pain_n of_o deprivation_n he_o be_v also_o accuse_v of_o dilapidation_n of_o his_o benefice_n he_o crave_v that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o liberty_n of_o a_o advocate_n to_o plead_v for_o he_o this_o be_v refuse_v but_o he_o shall_v answer_v for_o himself_o or_o choose_v a_o minister_n to_o argue_v for_o he_o within_o three_o day_n 4._o because_o comely_a and_o decent_a apparel_n be_v requisite_a in_o all_o man_n especial_o in_o these_o which_o have_v function_n in_o the_o church_n therefore_o all_o minister_n and_o preacher_n be_v forbid_v to_o have_v any_o brouder_a bagary_n of_o velvet_n on_o gown_n on_o cloak_n or_o coat_n or_o have_v any_o cut_n out_o of_o their_o clothes_n stitch_v with_o silk_n pesment_n or_o lace_n all_o variant_n colour_n on_o shert_n ring_n bracelet_n button_n of_o silver_n or_o of_o any_o metal_n all_o velvet_n satine_n tafety_n any_o licht_n colour_n but_o that_o all_o their_o habit_n be_v of_o grave_a colour_n to_o the_o end_n the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o slander_v by_o they_o and_o their_o immoderateness_n and_o that_o their_o vife_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o same_o ordinance_n 5._o because_o the_o long_a continuance_n of_o commissioner_n may_v induce_v some_o ambition_n &_o other_o inconvenients_n after_o long_o reason_v it_o be_v conclude_v by_o the_o grearte_a part_n that_o the_o commissioner_n shall_v be_v change_v yearly_o 6._o eight_o article_n to_o be_v present_v unto_o the_o lord_n regent_n 1._o for_o plant_v the_o word_n throughout_o the_o realm_n it_o be_v petition_v that_o such_o minister_n as_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o place_v may_v be_v receive_v minister_n which_o have_v many_o church_n may_v be_v relieve_v and_o commissioner_n be_v ●ased_v and_o bb_n have_v too_o great_a a_o charge_n may_v be_v help_v and_o provision_n of_o commissioner_n may_v be_v pay_v for_o these_o two_o year_n bypass_v and_o in_o time_n come_v 2._o that_o such_o impediment_n may_v be_v remove_v which_o hinder_v the_o progress_n of_o the_o doctrine_n such_o as_o abundance_n of_o vice_n un_fw-fr punish_v market_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o the_o trouble_v of_o minister_n in_o execution_n of_o theit_n ministry_n 3._o that_o the_o order_n concern_v the_o poor_a which_o before_o be_v begin_v may_v be_v put_v to_o full_a execution_n and_o to_o that_o effect_n a_o portion_n of_o the_o tyth_n which_o be_v the_o church_n patrimony_n a●swell_o of_o the_o two_o part_n as_o of_o the_o three_o may_v be_v employ_v for_o their_o sustentation_n as_o necessity_n crave_v 4._o because_o the_o school_n be_v the_o fountain_n from_o which_o minister_n must_v flow_v that_o provision_n may_v be_v make_v for_o they_o not_o only_o for_o student_n remain_v within_o the_o realm_n but_o for_o some_o man_n of_o good_a engine_n which_o by_o this_o church_n shall_v be_v find_v fit_a to_o visit_v other_o church_n and_o university_n for_o their_o furtherance_n in_o learning_n and_o
public_o read_v i._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o conference_n it_o be_v think_v good_a that_o a_o supplication_n be_v pen_v by_o the_o assembly_n concern_v those_o that_o shall_v vote_n in_o parliament_n in_o name_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v pen_v by_o john_n row_n and_o robert_n pont_n and_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o assembly_n on_o mooneday_n ii_o concern_v the_o observation_n the_o assembly_n proceed_v as_o follow_v in_o chap._n 2._o the_o 3._o article_n be_v agreed-upon_a conform_v to_o the_o conference_n in_o chap._n 3._o the_o 7._o article_n be_v to_o be_v further_o consider_v the_o ten_o article_n be_v think_v plain_a in_o itself_o concern_v the_o advice_n what_o censure_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o non-residents_a the_o church_n think_v meet_v a_o civil_a law_n be_v crave_v decern_v the_o benefice_n to_o vaik_fw-mi for_o not-residence_n in_o chap._n 4._o the_o 9_o article_n agree_v conform_v to_o the_o conference_n and_o desire_v the_o penalty_n of_o person_n excommunicate_a to_o be_v horn_v or_o caption_n by_o special_a act_n of_o parliament_n to_o be_v execute_v by_o the_o treasurer_n or_o other_o who_o it_o will_v please_v his_o majesty_n to_o appoint_v in_o chap._n 5._o agree_v with_o the_o two_o supplication_n desire_v in_o chap._n 6._o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o elder_n agree_v conform_v here_o the_o book_n of_o the_o assembly_n want_v two_o leaf_n then_o be_v some_o what_o of_o visitation_n of_o college_n school_n and_o hospital_n and_o the_o book_n want_v other_o two_o leaf_n then_o concern_v commissioner_n of_o country_n or_o province_n and_o other_o two_o leaf_n be_v want_v the_o next_o assembly_n be_v appoint_v to_o conveen_n at_o edinb_n octob._n 24._o the_o historical_a narration_n say_v all_o that_o can_v be_v obtain_v in_o this_o parliament_n be_v a_o commission_n to_o confer_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o book_n the_o commissioner_n which_o seek_v the_o ratification_n of_o it_o take_v this_o for_o a_o shift_a see_v the_o book_n be_v before_o allow_v in_o the_o conference_n except_o four_o particulares_fw-la whereinis_fw-la be_v no_o difficulty_n and_o be_v now_o explain_v by_o the_o assembly_n and_o therefore_o they_o crave_v that_o at_o last_o so_o many_o may_v be_v ratify_v as_o be_v agree_v upon_o that_o be_v not_o grant_v for_o morton_n be_v the_o chief_a leader_n in_o this_o parliament_n in_o the_o assembly_n october_n 24._o david_n ferguson_n be_v choose_v moderator_n 1._o the_o noble_a man_n in_o the_o town_n be_v desire_v to_o be_v present_a 2._o at_o assembly_n the_o 36._o assembly_n the_o desire_n of_o the_o assembly_n come_v the_o lord_n chancellor_n the_o earl_n of_o montrose_n the_o l._n l._n s●ton_n &_o lindsay_n it_o be_v show_v by_o the_o moderator_n what_o care_n and_o study_v the_o church_n have_v take_v to_o entertain_v and_o keep_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o sincere_a word_n of_o god_n unmixed_a with_o the_o invention_n of_o their_o own_o head_n which_o their_o special_a care_n be_v to_o reserve_v unto_o the_o posterity_n and_o see_v true_a religion_n can_v not_o continue_v long_o without_o good_a discipline_n in_o that_o part_n also_o they_o have_v employ_v their_o wit_n &_o study_n and_o draw_v forth_o of_o the_o pure_a fountain_n of_o god_n word_n such_o a_o discipline_n as_o be_v meet_v to_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n this_o they_o have_v present_v unto_o the_o king_n m._n with_o their_o supplication_n at_o who_o direction_n certain_a commissioner_n be_v appoint_v to_o reason_n with_o these_o who_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n there_o the_o whole_a matter_n be_v dispute_v it_o be_v resolve_v and_o agree_v except_o a_o few_o head_n and_o thereafter_o be_v present_v unto_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o article_n that_o the_o same_o discipline_n may_v take_v place_n and_o be_v establish_v by_o act_n &_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n but_o their_o travel_n have_v not_o succeed_v pray_v therefore_o the_o nobility_n present_v alswell_o open_o to_o make_v profession_n to_o the_o assembly_n if_o they_o will_v allow_v and_o maintain_v the_o religion_n present_o establish_v within_o the_o realm_n as_o also_o the_o discipline_n and_o policy_n already_o mention_v and_o to_o labour_v at_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n hand_n for_o answer_v unto_o the_o head_n after_o follow_v that_o be_v that_o his_o gr._n and_o counsel_n will_v establish_v such_o head_n of_o the_o policy_n as_o be_v already_o resolve_v and_o agreed-upon_a by_o the_o commissioner_n and_o cause_v the_o other_o to_o be_v reason_v and_o put_v to_o a_o end_n and_o that_o his_o gr._n and_o counsel_n will_v restore_v the_o church_n unto_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n concern_v the_o three_o and_o that_o none_o vote_v in_o parliament_n in_o name_n of_o the_o church_n but_o such_o as_o shall_v have_v commission_n from_o the_o church_n for_o that_o effect_n and_o that_o presentation_n of_o benefice_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o commissioner_n of_o country_n where_o the_o benefice_n lie_v and_o to_o the_o end_n the_o matter_n may_v be_v the_o better_a and_o soon_o exp_v that_o their_o lordship_n will_v appoint_v a_o time_n convenient_a thereunto_o as_o they_o may_v best_o spare_v that_o such_o brethren_n as_o shall_v be_v name_v may_v wait_v upon_o their_o honour_n the_o noble_a man_n answer_v that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v make_v public_a profession_n of_o the_o religion_n heretofore_o and_o all_o now_o declair_a they_o embrace_v the_o religion_n and_o shall_v maintain_v the_o same_o to_o their_o power_n and_o in_o the_o other_o particulares_fw-la they_o think_v that_o supplication_n be_v make_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n and_o they_o will_v insist_v with_o the_o king_n for_o his_o answer_n and_o they_o will_v show_v they_o to_o morrow_n the_o time_n for_o that_o effect_n 3._o the_o act_n of_o the_o precede_a assembly_n concern_v the_o suspension_n of_o benefice_n the_o assembly_n otdaine_v it_o to_o stand_v in_o full_a strength_n until_o the_o next_o assembly_n 4._o james_n boid_a bishop_n of_o glasgow_n be_v require_v to_o submit_v according_a to_o t●e_v act_n of_o the_o last_o assembly_n give_v his_o answer_n in_o write_v as_o follow_v i_o understand_v the_o name_n office_n and_o reverence_n bear_v to_o a_o bishop_n to_o be_v lawful_a by_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n and_o be_v elect_v by_o the_o church_n and_o king_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o glasgow_n i_o esteem_v my_o call_n and_o office_n lawful_a and_o as_o for_o my_o execute_n of_o that_o charge_n commit_v unto_o i_o i_o be_o content_a to_o endeavour_v at_o my_o utmost_a ability_n to_o perform_v the_o same_o and_o every_o point_n thereof_o and_o to_o abide_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n if_o i_o offend_v in_o my_o duty_n crave_v always_o a_o brotherly_a construction_n at_o their_o hand_n see_v the_o charge_n be_v weighty_a and_o the_o claim_v to_o be_v lay_v to_o my_o charge_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o canon_n leave_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o tim._n 3._o as_o that_o place_n be_v point_v unto_o i_o at_o my_o reception_n thereby_o to_o understand_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o for_o my_o live_n and_o rent_n and_o other_o thing_n grant_v by_o the_o prince_n unto_o i_o and_o my_o successor_n for_o serve_v that_o charge_n i_o reckon_v the_o same_o lawful_a as_o to_o my_o duty_n unto_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n in_o assist_v his_o gr._n in_o counsel_n or_o parliament_n when_o i_o be_o crave_v thereunto_o my_o subjection_n compelle_n i_o to_o obey_v it_o and_o it_o be_v no_o hurt_n but_o good_a to_o the_o church_n that_o some_o of_o our_o number_n be_v at_o the_o make_n of_o good_a law_n and_o ordinance_n in_o the_o do_v whereof_o i_o protest_v before_o god_n i_o intend_v never_o to_o do_v anything_o but_o what_o i_o believe_v shall_v stand_v with_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o a_o well_o reform_a country_n as_o also_o a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o live_n which_o i_o possess_v have_v be_v give_v for_o that_o cause_n this_o answer_n be_v read_v and_o after_o vote_v be_v judge_v not_o satisfactory_a and_o therefore_o he_o be_v order_v to_o return_v after_o noon_n with_o better_a resolution_n here_o the_o book_n of_o the_o assembly_n want_v two_o leaf_n and_o it_o appear_v thaet_fw-la asupplication_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n by_o these_o imperfect_a word_n follow_v vice_n universal_o abound_v within_o this_o realm_n may_v be_v punish_v and_o bridle_v and_o to_o insist_v with_o convenient_a diligence_n with_o his_o ma._n &_o counsel_n for_o grant_v the_o premise_n and_o to_o report_v 5._o all_o that_o be_v now_o or_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v depose_v from_o the_o ministry_n for_o their_o offence_n shall_v be_v charge_v by_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o bound_n to_o dimitt_n their_o benefice_n ...._o and_o if_o they_o
j._n christ_n correction_n of_o manner_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o declare_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o face_n of_o church_n nor_o other_o face_n of_o religion_n than_o be_v present_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n establish_v within_o this_o realm_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a acknowledge_v than_o which_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v within_o the_o famine_n church_n or_o which_o flow_v there_o from_o concern_v the_o premise_n 3._o all_o market_n and_o fair_n be_v forbid_v to_o be_v keep_v on_o the_o sabboth-day_n or_o in_o any_o church_n or_o churchyaird_a so_o all_o handiwork_n on_o the_o sabboth-day_n all_o game_n play_v pass_v to_o tavern_n and_o aile-house_n and_o wilful_a remain_v from_o their_o parish-church_n in_o time_n of_o sermon_n or_o prayer_n and_o a_o pecuniall_a mulct_n lay_v upon_o the_o transgressors_n respective_a to_o be_v pay_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o poor_a of_o the_o parish_n 4._o a_o act_n be_v make_v concern_v these_o who_o send_v their_o child_n out_o of_o country_n 5._o every_o householder_n have_v land_n or_o good_n worth_a 500_o pound_n be_v oblige_v to_o have_v a_o bible_n which_o at_o that_o time_n be_v print_v in_o folio_n and_o a_o psalm_n book_n in_o his_o house_n for_o the_o better_a instruction_n of_o themselves_o and_o their_o family_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n 6._o in_o the_o table_n of_o act_n not_o print_v be_v mention_n of_o a_o commission_n anent_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o kirk_n the_o last_o part_n thereof_o observe_v 1._o the_o parliament_n in_o the_o year_n 1560._o be_v acknowledge_v to_o have_v be_v a_o lawful_a parliament_n 2._o we_o may_v see_v that_o the_o discipline_n at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o church_n be_v authorise_v and_o ordain_v to_o continue_v moreover_o what_o be_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n we_o may_v learn_v from_o a_o epistle_n of_o andrew_n meluin_n unto_o the._n beza_n date_v november_n 13._o an._n 1579._o we_o have_v not_o cease_v these_o fyve_o year_n to_o fight_v against_o pseudepiscopacy_n many_o of_o the_o nobility_n resist_v we_o and_o to_o press_v the_o severity_n of_o discipline_n we_o have_v present_v unto_o his_o royal_a majesty_n and_o three_o estate_n of_o the_o realm_n both_o before_o and_o now_o in_o this_o parliament_n the_o form_n of_o discipline_n to_o be_v insert_v among_o the_o act_n and_o to_o be_v confirm_v by_o pulick_a authority_n we_o have_v the_o king_n mind_n bend_v towards_o we_o but_o many_o of_o the_o peer_n against_o we_o for_o they_o allege_v if_o pseudepiscopacy_n be_v take_v away_o one_o of_o the_o estate_n be_v pull_v down_o if_o presbytery_n be_v erect_v the_o rojall_a majesty_n be_v diminish_v if_o church-goods_a be_v restore_v unto_o the_o lawful_a use_n the_o king_n treasury_n be_v empty_v see_v the_o b._n with_o abbot_n and_o prior_n make_v up_o the_o three_o estate_n and_o all_o jurisdiction_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o political_a belong_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsel_n and_o thing_n ecclesticall_a shall_v by_o their_o sentence_n be_v adjudge_v unto_o the_o king_n treasure_n that_o they_o do_v speak_v or_o think_v so_o the_o cause_n in_o many_o be_v ignorance_n in_o other_o a_o wicked_a life_n and_o evil_a manner_n and_o in_o many_o a_o desire_n to_o catch_v the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n which_o yet_o remain_v or_o fear_v of_o lose_v what_o they_o have_v take_v and_o what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o that_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n be_v not_o lawful_a until_o the_o cause_n be_v know_v by_o the_o king_n counsel_n for_o they_o know_v their_o own_o guiltiness_n be_v fear_v for_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o presbytery_n not_o so_o much_o for_o fear_v of_o god_n judgement_n as_o for_o terror_n of_o the_o civil_a punishment_n which_o by_o our_o law_n and_o practice_n do_v follow_v last_o while_z they_o have_v regard_n unto_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n more_o than_o unto_o the_o reveeled_a word_n of_o god_n they_o wish_v that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v carry_v in_o the_o name_n and_o at_o the_o beck_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o one_o perpetual_a overseer_n and_o will_v have_v nothing_o administer_v by_o the_o common_a sentence_n of_o the_o presbytery_n the_o lord_n in_o mercy_n sweep_v away_o these_o evil_n from_o his_o church_n this_o epistle_n be_v in_o vindic._n philadelph_n pag._n 41._o immediate_o before_o this_o parliament_n the_o duke_n d'obigny_n afterward_o style_v earl_n of_o lennox_n come_v into_o scotland_n towit_n in_o the_o last_o week_n of_o septemb_n as_o spotswood_n show_v in_o histor_n pag._n 308._o now_o if_o we_o confer_v that_o time_n with_o what_o be_v write_v in_o that_o page_n his_o spleen_n may_v appear_v against_o the_o truth_n for_o he_o make_v the_o duke_n come_v to_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o variance_n betwixt_o the_o king_n and_o the_o church_n at_o the_o assembly_n precede_v where_o no_o difference_n be_v appear_v but_o afterward_o some_o what_o follow_v jealousy_n and_o emulation_n be_v in_o the_o winter_n follow_v among_o the_o noble_a man_n as_o the_o earl_n of_o athol_n chancellor_n be_v envy_v and_o die_v and_o other_o flee_v out_o of_o the_o country_n but_o no_o variance_n do_v as_o yet_o appear_v betwixt_o the_o king_n and_o the_o churchman_n xvii_o in_o aprile_a 1580._o a_o proclamation_n be_v make_v in_o the_o king_n name_n 1580._o 1580._o ex_fw-la deliberatione_n dominorum_fw-la consilii_fw-la charge_v all_o superintendent_o and_o comnissioner_n and_o minister_n serve_v at_o kirk_n to_o note_v the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o subject_n alsweel_v man_n as_o woman_n suspect_v to_o be_v papist_n or_o ......_o and_o to_o admonish_v they_o ......_o to_o give_v confession_n of_o their_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o form_n approve_v by_o the_o parliament_n and_o to_o submit_v unto_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o true_a church_n within_o a_o reasonable_a space_n ......_o and_o if_o they_o fail_v ......_o that_o the_o superintendent_n or_o commissioner_n present_v a_o catalogue_n of_o their_o name_n unto_o the_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o secret_a counsel_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o the_o time_n between_o and_o the_o 15._o day_n of_o july_n next_o to_o come_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n make_v against_o such_o person_n may_v be_v execute_v the_o assembly_n conveen_n at_o dundy_n july_n 12._o here_o be_v the_o laird_n of_o lundy_n commissioner_n assembly_n the_o 38._o assembly_n from_o the_o king_n commissioner_n etc._n etc._n james_n lowson_n be_v choose_v moderator_n 1._o some_o speak_v against_o the_o privy_a conference_n as_o if_o tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n may_v creepin_a by_o it_o and_o liberty_n be_v take_v from_o other_o member_n nevertheless_o after_o reason_v it_o be_v judge_v expedient_a to_o continue_v 2._o john_n craig_n one_o of_o the_o king_n minister_n deliver_v this_o letter_n from_o the_o king_n trusty_n and_o well-beloved_a friend_n we_o greet_v you_o well_o we_o have_v direct_v towards_o you_o our_o trusty_a friend_n the_o prior_n of_o pettinweem_n and_o the_o laird_n of_o lundy_n instruct_v with_o our_o power_n for_o assist_v with_o their_o power_n and_o counsel_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o they_o may_v tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o preservation_n of_o we_o and_o our_o estate_n desire_v you_o hearty_o to_o accept_v they_o and_o our_o good_a will_n commit_v to_o they_o for_o the_o present_a in_o good_a part_n so_o we_o commend_v you_o to_o god_n bless_a protection_n from_o our_o palace_n of_o falkland_n july_n 11._o 1580._o 3._o forsomuch_o as_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o it_o be_v now_o use_v and_o common_o take_v in_o this_o realm_n have_v no_o sure_a warrant_n authority_n nor_o good_a ground_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n but_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o folly_n and_o corruption_n of_o man_n invention_n to_o the_o great_a overthrow_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o whole_a assembly_n in_o one_o voice_n after_o liberty_n give_v to_o ail_v man_n to_o reason_n in_o the_o matter_n and_o none_o oppon_v himself_o to_o defend_v the_o say_a pretend_a office_n find_v and_o declare_v the_o same_o pretend_a office_n use_v and_o term_v as_o be_v above_o say_v unlawful_a in_o itself_o as_o have_v neither_o ground_n nor_o warrant_n within_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o ordain_v all_o such_o person_n as_o use_v or_o shall_v use_v hereafter_o the_o say_a office_n shall_v be_v charge_v to_o dimit_v simpliciter_fw-la quite_o and_o leave-off_a the_o same_o as_o a_o office_n whereunto_o they_o be_v not_o call_v by_o god_n and_o to_o desist_v and_o cease_v from_o all_o preach_n ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o use_v any_o way_n the_o office_n of_o pastor_n until_o they_o receive_v de_fw-fr novo_fw-la admission_n from_o the_o general_n assembly_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o
let_v a_o lawful_a &_o goodly_a seignory_n look_v that_o they_o preach_v not_o quarterly_a or_o monthly_o but_o continual_o ●ot_n for_o filthy_a lucre_n sake_n but_o of_o a_o ready_a mind_n so_o god_n shall_v be_v glorify_v your_o conscience_n discharge_v and_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n edify_v the_o second_o point_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n i_o pass_v over_o because_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o these_o rite_n in_o another_o place_n than_o it_o follow_v the_o three_o part_n concern_v ecclesticall_a discipline_n the_o officer_n that_o have_v to_o deal_v church_n 3._o for_o another_o discipline_n in_o church_n in_o this_o charge_n be_v chief_o three_o minister_n preacher_n or_o pastor_n of_o who_o before_o senior_n or_o elder_n and_o deacons_n concern_v senior_n not_o only_o their_o office_n but_o their_o name_n also_o be_v out_o of_o this_o english_a church_n utter_o remove_v their_o office_n be_v to_o govern_v the_o church_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o minister_n consult_v to_o admonish_v to_o correct_v and_o to_o order_v all_o thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o congregation_n in_o stead_n of_o these_o senior_n in_o every_o church_n the_o pope_n have_v bring_v in_o and_o we_o yet_o maintain_v the_o lordship_n of_o one_o man_n over_o many_o church_n yea_o over_o sundry_a shire_n these_o senior_n then_o because_o their_o charge_n be_v not_o over_o much_o do_v execute_v their_o office_n in_o their_o own_o person_n without_o substitute_n our_o lord_n bishop_n have_v their_o under-officer_n as_o suffragans_n chancellor_n archdeacon_n official_o commissiaries_n and_o the_o like_a touch_v deacon_n though_o the_o name_n be_v remain_v yet_o be_v the_o office_n sow_o pervert_v &_o turn_v upside_o down_o for_o their_o duty_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v to_o gather_v the_o alm_n diligent_o and_o to_o distribute_v it_o faithful_o also_o for_o the_o sick_a and_o impotent_a person_n to_o provide_v painful_o have_v ever_o a_o diligent_a care_n that_o the_o charity_n of_o godly_a man_n be_v not_o waste_v on_o loiterer_n and_o idle_a vagabound_v now_o it_o be_v the_o first_o step_n to_o the_o ministry_n nay_o rather_o a_o mere_a order_n of_o priesthood_n for_o they_o may_v baptize_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n or_o in_o their_o absence_n if_o necessity_n require_v minister_v the_o other_o sacrament_n likewise_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o homily_n in_o the_o congregation_n instruct_v the_o youth_n in_o the_o catechism_n and_o also_o preach_v if_o he_o be_v command_v by_o the_o bishop_n again_o in_o the_o old_a church_n every_o congregation_n have_v their_o deacons_n now_o they_o be_v tie_v to_o cathedral_n church_n only_o and_o what_o do_v they_o there_o gather_v the_o alm_n and_o distribut_n to_o the_o poor_a nay_o that_o be_v the_o least_o piece_n or_o rather_o no_o part_n of_o their_o function_n what_o then_o to_o sing_v a_o gospel_n when_o the_o bishop_n minister_v the_o communion_n if_o this_o he_o not_o a_o pervert_n of_o this_o office_n &_o charge_n let_v every_o one_o judge_n and_o yet_o lest_o the_o reformer_n of_o our_o time_n shall_v seem_v to_o take_v utter_o out_o of_o god_n church_n this_o necessary_a function_n they_o appoint_v somewhat_o to_o it_o concern_v the_o poor_a and_o that_o be_v to_o search_v for_o the_o sick_a needy_a &_o impotent_a people_n of_o the_o parish_n and_o to_o intimate_v their_o estate_n name_n &_o place_n where_o they_o dwell_v to_o the_o curate_n that_o by_o his_o exhortation_n they_o may_v be_v relieve_v by_o the_o parish_n or_o other_o convenient_a alm_n and_o this_o you_o see_v be_v the_o nigh_a part_n of_o his_o office_n and_o yet_o you_o must_v understand_v it_o to_o be_v in_o such_o place_n where_o be_v a_o curate_n and_o a_o deacon_n every_o parish_n can_v not_o be_v at_o that_o cost_n to_o have_v both_o nay_o no_o parish_n so_o far_o as_o can_v be_v gather_v at_o this_o present_a have_v now_o then_o if_o you_o will_v restore_v the_o church_n to_o its_o ancient_a officer_n this_o you_o must_v do_v in_o stead_n of_o a_o archbishop_n or_o lord_n bishop_n you_o must_v make_v equality_n of_o minister_n in_o stead_n of_o chancellor_n archdeacon_n official_o commissary_n proctor_n doctor_n summoner_n churchwarden_n and_o the_o like_v you_o have_v to_o plant_v in_o every_o congregation_n a_o lawful_a &_o godly_a seignory_n the_o deaconship_n must_v not_o be_v confound_v with_o the_o ministry_n nor_o the_o collector_n for_o the_o poor_a may_v not_o usurp_v the_o deacones_fw-la office_n but_o he_o that_o have_v a_o office_n must_v look_v to_o his_o office_n and_o every_o man_n must_v keep_v himself_o within_o the_o bound_n &_o limit_n of_o his_o own_o vocation_n and_o to_o these_o three_o joint_o that_o be_v the_o minister_n senior_n &_o deacons_n be_v the_o whole_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v commit_v discipline_n the_o use_n ●●_o discipline_n this_o regiment_n consist_v especial_o in_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n which_o be_v a_o order_n lest_o by_o god_n unto_o his_o church_n whereby_o man_n learn_v to_o frame_v their_o will_n and_o do_n according_o to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n by_o instruct_v &_o admonish_v one_o another_o yea_o and_o by_o correct_v &_o punish_v all_o wilful_a person_n rnd_v contemner_n of_o the_o same_o of_o this_o discipline_n there_o be_v two_o kind_n one_o private_a wherewith_o we_o will_v not_o deal_v because_o it_o be_v impertinent_a to_o our_o purpose_n another_o public_a which_o although_o it_o have_v be_v long_o banish_v yet_o if_o now_o at_o length_n it_o may_v be_v restore_v will_v be_v very_o necessary_a &_o profitable_a for_o the_o build_n up_o of_o god_n house_n the_o final_a end_n of_o this_o discipline_n be_v the_o reform_v of_o the_o disorder_a and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n and_o to_o bridle_v such_o as_o will_v offend_v the_o chief_a part_n and_o last_o punishment_n of_o this_o discipline_n be_v excommunication_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n determine_v if_o the_o offender_n be_v obstinate_a which_o how_o miserable_o it_o have_v be_v by_o the_o pope_n proctor_n and_o be_v by_o our_o new_a canonist_n abuse_v who_o see_v not_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o be_v in_o many_o man_n hand_n now_o one_o alone_a excommunicate_n in_o those_o day_n it_o be_v the_o last_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o never_o go_v forth_o but_o for_o notorious_a crime_n now_o it_o be_v pronounce_v for_o every_o light_a trifle_n then_o excommunication_n be_v great_o regard_v &_o fear_v now_o because_o it_o be_v a_o money-matter_n no_o whit_n at_o at_o all_o esteem_v then_o for_o great_a sin_n severe_a punishment_n and_o fot_o small_a offence_n little_a censure_n now_o great_a sin_n either_o not_o at_o all_o punish_v as_o blasphemy_n usury_n etc._n etc._n or_o slight_o pass_v over_o with_o prick_v in_o a_o blanket_n or_o pin_v in_o a_o sheet_n as_o adultery_n whoordom_n drunkenness_n etc._n etc._n again_o such_o as_o be_v no_o sin_n as_o if_o a_o man_n conform_v not_o himself_o to_o popish_a order_n &_o ceremone_n if_o he_o come_v not_o at_o the_o whistle_n of_o he_o who_o by_o god_n word_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o call_v we_o mean_v chancellor_n official_o doctor_n and_o all_o that_o rabble_n be_v grievous_o punish_v not_o only_o by_o excommunication_n suspension_n deprivation_n and_o other_o as_o they_o term_v it_o spiritual_a coërtion_n but_o also_o by_o banish_v imprison_a revile_v taunt_a and_o what_o not_o then_o the_o sentence_n be_v temper_v according_a to_o the_o notoriousness_n of_o the_o fact_n now_o on_o the_o one_o side_n either_o hatred_n against_o some_o person_n carry_v man_n head_n long_o into_o rash_a &_o cruel_a judgement_n or_o else_o favour_n affection_n or_o money_n mitigate_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o same_o and_o all_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v because_o the_o regiment_n leave_v by_o christ_n unto_o his_o church_n be_v commit_v into_o the_o man_n hand_n who_o alone_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o easy_a for_o the_o wicked_a by_o bribe_v to_o pervert_v than_o to_o overthrow_v the_o faith_n &_o piety_n of_o a_o zealous_a &_o godly_a company_n for_o such_o manner_n of_o man_n shall_v the_o signor_n be_v then_o it_o be_v say_v tell_v the_o church_n now_o it_o be_v speak_v complain_v to_o my_o lord_n grace_n primate_n &_o metropolitan_a of_o all_o england_n or_o to_o his_o inferior_a my_o lord_n b._n of_o the_o diocese_n if_o not_o to_o he_o show_v the_o chancellor_n or_o official_a or_o commissary_n or_o doctor_n again_o whereas_o the_o excommunicate_a be_v never_o receive_v till_o they_o have_v public_o confess_v their_o offence_n now_o for_o pay_v the_o fee_n of_o the_o court_n they_o shall_v by_o master_n official_a or_o chancellor_n easy_o be_v absolve_v in_o some_o private_a place_n then_o the_o congregation_n grieve_v by_o the_o wickedness_n
other_o to_o go_v with_o he_o and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o have_v a_o papist_n with_o he_o he_o can_v never_o have_v look_v to_o prevail_v because_o our_o dignity_n and_o government_n come_v whole_o and_o every_o part_n thereof_o from_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v rule_v and_o defend_v by_o the_o same_o canon_n whereby_o his_o popedom_n be_v support_v so_o that_o if_o i_o have_v want_v their_o help_n i_o have_v have_v no_o authority_n either_o from_o god_n or_o man_n no_o help_n either_o by_o reason_n or_o learning_n whereby_o i_o can_v have_v be_v further_v and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o erect_v the_o pope_n kingdom_n no_o question_n but_o he_o do_v so_o and_o that_o make_v for_o we_o say_v the_o bishop_n for_o albeit_o we_o will_v if_o we_o may_v of_o the_o two_o keep_v rather_o the_o protestant_n religion_n with_o our_o dignity_n then_o the_o other_o yet_o have_v we_o rather_o change_v our_o religion_n than_o forgo_v our_o privilege_n ......_o and_o we_o have_v retain_v they_o of_o purpose_n for_o we_o can_v bear_v with_o their_o religion_n so_o that_o they_o bear_v up_o our_o authority_n etc._n etc._n jewel_n testimony_n against_o episcopacy_n of_o b._n jewel_n i_o will_v not_o think_v that_o all_o the_o bishop_n be_v of_o this_o mind_n but_o too_o many_o of_o they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v clear_a by_o their_o silence_v and_o depose_v so_o many_o learned_a man_n i_o and_o their_o banish_v such_o as_o that_o learned_a thomas_n cartwright_a etc._n etc._n in_o this_o discourse_n we_o see_v also_o what_o ground_n they_o have_v for_o episcopacy_n and_o for_o clear_v this_o point_n i_o will_v subjoin_v but_o two_o or_o three_o testimony_n one_o of_o that_o learned_a bishop_n jewel_n in_o many_o place_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o equality_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n i_o name_v but_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o apology_n against_o harding_n edit_n an._n 1570._o pag._n 243._o saying_n what_o mean_v m._n hardinge_n to_o come_v in_o with_o the_o difference_n between_o priest_n and_o bishop_n ..._o be_v it_o so_o horrible_a a_o heresy_n as_o he_o make_v it_o to_o say_v that_o by_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n be_v all_o one_o or_o know_v he_o how_o far_o and_o unto_o who_o he_o reach_v the_o name_n of_o a_o hereticque_a very_o chrysostom_n say_v on_o 1._o tim._n homil_n 1●_n inter_fw-la episcopum_fw-la &_o presbyterum_fw-la interest_n fermè_fw-la nihil_fw-la between_o a_o bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v no_o difference_n s._n jerom_n ad_fw-la evagr._fw-la say_v somewhat_o in_o rough_a sort_n audio_fw-la quendam_fw-la in_o tantam_fw-la erupisse_n vecordiam_fw-la ut_fw-la diaconos_fw-la presbyteris_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la episcopis_fw-la anteferret_fw-la cùm_fw-la apostolus_fw-la perspicuè_fw-fr doceat_fw-la eosdem_fw-la esse_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la qu●s_fw-la episcopos_fw-la i_o hear_v say_v there_o be_v one_o become_v so_o peevish_a that_o he_o set_v deacons_n before_n priest_n that_o be_v bishop_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n plain_o teach_v we_o that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v all_o one_o s._n augustin_n in_o quest_n vet._n &_o nov_n tost_n qu._n 101._o say_v quid_fw-la est_fw-la episcopus_fw-la nisi_fw-la primus_fw-la presbyter_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la summus_fw-la sacordo_n what_o be_v a_o bishop_n but_o the_o first_o priest_n that_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n so_o say_v s._n ambrose_n de_fw-fr dignit_fw-la sacerdot_n episcopi_fw-la &_o presbyteri_fw-la una_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la est_fw-la uterque_fw-la enim_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la sed_fw-la episcopus_fw-la primus_fw-la est_fw-la there_o be_v but_o one_o consecration_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o bishop_n for_o both_o of_o they_o be_v priest_n but_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o first_o all_o these_o and_o other_o mo_z holy_a father_n together_o with_o s._n paul_n the_o apostle_n for_o thus_o sai_v by_o m._n hardinge_n advice_n must_v be_v hold_v for_o heretic_n so_o ivell_n another_o testimony_n be_v doctor_n reynolds_n reynolds_n 2._o of_o d._n reynolds_n letter_n to_o sir_n francis_n knollis_n concern_v do._n bancroft_n sermon_n at_o paul_n cross_a febr._n 9_o 1588._o in_o the_o parliament_n time_n because_o i_o have_v not_o see_v this_o letter_n among_o the_o doctor_n work_n and_o i_o think_v it_o be_v not_o common_a but_o i_o have_v find_v it_o print_v with_o some_o o●her_n piece_n of_o that_o kind_n i_o set_v it_o down_o here_o word_n by_o word_n albeit_o right_a honourable_a i_o take_v great_a comfort_n in_o labour_v to_o discover_v &_o overthrow_v the_o error_n of_o jesuit_n &_o papist_n enemy_n of_o religion_n then_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n yet_o see_v it_o have_v please_v your_o honorio_n to_o require_v i_o to_o show_v my_o opinion_n of_o these_o thing_n which_o certain_a of_o these_o man_n maintain_v and_o stand_v in_o i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n by_o the_o example_n of_o levi_n deut._n 33._o who_o say_v of_o his_o father_n &_o mother_n i_o regard_v they_o not_o nor_o acknowledge_v he_o his_o brethren_n to_o declare_v the_o truth_n without_o respect_n of_o person_n of_o the_o two_o point_n therefore_o in_o do._n bancroft_n sermon_n which_o your_o ho._n mention_v one_o be_v concern_v that_o he_o seem_v to_o avouch_v the_o superiority_n which_o bishop_n have_v among_o we_o over_o the_o clergy_n to_o be_v god_n own_o ordinance_n though_o not_o by_o express_a word_n yet_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n in_o that_o he_o affirm_v their_o opinion_n who_o oppugn_v that_o superiority_n to_o be_v heresy_n wherein_o i_o must_v confess_v he_o have_v commit_v a_o oversight_n in_o my_o judgement_n and_o himself_o i_o think_v if_o he_o be_v advertise_v will_v acknowledge_v it_o for_o have_v say_v first_o that_o aërius_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n betwixt_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o bishop_n and_o afterward_o that_o martin_n and_o his_o companion_n do_v maintain_v this_o opinion_n of_o aërius_n he_o add_v that_o aërius_n persist_v therein_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n by_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o likewise_o that_o martin_n and_o all_o his_o companion_n opinion_n have_v herein_o be_v condemn_v for_o heresy_n touch_v martin_n if_o any_o man_n behave_v himself_o otherwise_o then_o in_o discretion_n &_o charity_n he_o ought_v let_v the_o blame_n be_v lay_v where_o the_o fault_n be_v i_o defend_v he_o not_o but_o if_o by_o the_o way_n he_o utter_v a_o truth_n mingle_v with_o whatsoever_o else_o it_o be_v not_o reason_n that_o that_o which_o be_v of_o god_n shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o that_o which_o be_v of_o man_n no_o more_o than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v be_v reprove_v because_o it_o be_v maintain_v &_o hold_v by_o the_o pharise_n wherefore_o remove_v the_o odious_a name_n of_o martin_n from_o that_o which_o in_o sincerity_n &_o love_n be_v to_o be_v deal_v with_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o aforesaid_a word_n of_o d._n bancroft_n that_o he_o avouch_v the_o superiority_n which_o b._n have_v over_o the_o clergy_n to_o be_v god_n own_o ordinance_n for_o he_o improve_v the_o impugner_n of_o it_o as_o hold_v with_o aërius_n that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n betwixt_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o bishop_n which_o he_o can_v not_o do_v with_o reason_n unless_o he_o himself_o approve_v the_o bs_n superiority_n as_o establish_v by_o god_n word_n and_o he_o add_v that_o their_o opinion_n who_o gainsay_v be_v heresy_n whereof_o it_o ensue_v he_o think_v it_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n since_o heresy_n be_v a_o error_n repugnant_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n our_o own_o church_n do_v teach_v we_o now_o the_o argument_n which_o he_o bring_v to_o prove_v it_o a_o heresy_n be_v partly_o over_o weak_a partly_o untrue_a over_o weak_a that_o he_o begin_v with_o one_o of_o epiphanius_n untrue_a that_o he_o adjoin_v the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n for_o though_o epiphanius_n do_v say_v that_o aërius_n assertion_n be_v full_a of_o folly_n yet_o he_o disprove_v not_o the_o reason_n which_o aërius_n stand_v on_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n nay_o he_o deal_v so_o in_o seek_v to_o disprove_v it_o that_o bellarm_n in_o the_o jesuit_n to._n 1._o contr_n 5._o l._n 1._o c._n 15._o desirous_a to_o make_v the_o best_a of_o epiphanius_n who_o opinion_n here_o in_o he_o maintain_v against_o the_o protestaut_n yet_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o epiphanius_n his_o answer_n be_v none_o of_o the_o wise_a nor_o any_o way_n can_v fit_v the_o text_n as_o for_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o d._n bancroft_n say_v condemn_v that_o opinion_n of_o aërius_n for_o a_o heresy_n and_o himself_o for_o a_o heretik_a because_o he_o persist_v in_o it_o that_o be_v a_o large_a speech_n but_o what_o proof_n have_v he_o that_o
bishop_n have_v among_o we_o over_o the_o clergy_n to_o be_v of_o god_n ordinance_n and_o this_o far_o of_o the_o former_a point_n of_o d._n bancroft_n sermon_n the_o latter_a be_v concern_v that_o he_o affirm_v that_o s._n jerom_n say_v and_o m._n calvin_n seem_v on_o his_o report_n to_o confess_v that_o bishop_n have_v have_v the_o say_a superiority_n ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o s._n mark_v the_o evangelist_n of_o the_o which_o point_n i_o think_v as_o of_o the_o former_a since_o neither_o jerom_n say_v it_o neither_o do_v calvin_n seem_v to_o confess_v it_o on_o his_o report_n for_o bishop_n among_o we_o beside_o ordain_v and_o laying-on_a of_o hand_n may_v do_v sundry_a other_o thing_n which_o inferior_a minister_n or_o priest_n as_o d._n bancroft_n term_v they_o may_v not_o but_o jerom_n after_o mention_v of_o the_o superiority_n allot_v to_o bishop_n since_o mark_v time_n what_o do_v a_o bishop_n say_v he_o except_o ordination_n which_o a_o priest_n do_v not_o mean_v &_o enforce_v by_o this_o kind_n of_o speech_n as_o a_o thing_n most_o evident_a and_o such_o as_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v that_o bb._n have_v that_o only_a power_n above_o priest_n then_o which_o chrysostom_n also_o witness_v though_o neither_o have_v they_o it_o alone_o in_o all_o place_n as_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o a_o council_n at_o carthage_n council_n 4._o c._n 3._o show_v their_o church_n order_n that_o the_o priest_n lay_v on_o their_o band_n with_o the_o bishop_n on_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v yet_o jerom_n have_v prove_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v all_o one_o even_o in_o the_o right_n of_o this_o too_o in_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 14_o grant_v that_o afterward_o bishop_n have_v that_o peculiar_a to_o themselves_o some_o where_n but_o nothing_o else_o save_v it_o s._n jerom_n therefore_o say_v not_o of_o that_o superiority_n whereof_o the_o question_n be_v that_o bishop_n have_v have_v it_o ever_o since_o s._n mark_v time_n no_o more_o do_v m._n calvine_n seem_v to_o confess_v it_o upon_o his_o report_n for_o calvin_n in_o the_o same_o place_n in_o institu_fw-la lib._n 4._o c._n 4._o se_fw-la 2_o that_o d._n bancroft_n quote_v show_v how_o in_o old_a time_n the_o minister_n that_o have_v charge_n to_o teach_v those_o of_o their_o conpany_n one_o in_o every_o city_n to_o who_o they_o do_v especial_o give_v the_o title_n of_o bishop_n lest_o equality_n shall_v bteed_o dissension_n yet_o say_v he_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o above_o they_o in_o honour_n &_o dignity_n that_o he_o shall_v rule_v over_o they_o but_o look_v what_o be_v the_o consul_n duty_n in_o the_o senate_n to_o propose_v matter_n to_o ask_v their_o opinion_n to_o direct_v other_o by_o give_v they_o advice_n by_o admonish_v by_o exhort_v ro_o guide_v the_o whole_a action_n by_o his_o authority_n and_o see_v that_o perform_v which_o be_v agree_v upon_o by_o their_o common_a consent_n that_o charge_n have_v the_o bishop_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o minister_n and_o have_v declare_v that_o s._n jerom_n show_v this_o to_o have_v be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o man_n upon_o the_o first_o of_o titus_n he_o add_v that_o the_o same_o jerom_n other_o where_o show_v how_o ancient_a a_o order_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v even_o from_o mark_n time_n to_o hereclas_n &_o dionysius_n at_o alexandria_n in_o which_o word_n of_o calvin_n see_v that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n he_o mention_v have_v evident_a relation_n to_o that_o before_o describe_v and_o that_o in_o the_o describe_v of_o it_o he_o have_v say_v the_o bishop_n be_v not_o so_o above_o the_o rest_n in_o honour_n that_o he_o have_v rule_v over_o they_o it_o follow_v that_o m._n calvin_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o seem_v to_o confess_v upon_o jeroms_n report_n that_o ever_o since_o mark_v time_n bishop_n have_v have_v a_o roll_a superiority_n over_o the_o clergy_n wherefore_o to_o use_v no_o more_o proof_n in_o a_o thing_n manifest_a which_o else_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v more_o at_o large_a out_o of_o s._n jerom_n and_o m._n calvin_n both_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o neither_o of_o they_o do_v affirm_v that_o bishop_n so_o long_a time_n have_v have_v such_o superiority_n as_o d._n bancroft_n seem_v to_o father_n upon_o they_o thus_o i_o have_v signify_v my_o opinion_n of_o the_o point_n that_o your_o ho._n specify_v in_o d._n bancroft_n sermon_n etc._n etc._n unto_o this_o testimony_n of_o the_o learned_a do._n reinolds_n i_o add_v another_o which_o be_v print_v with_o it_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o it_o be_v historical_a this_o be_v a_o speech_n of_o the_o same_o bb._n testimony_n of_o sir_n ●●_o knollis_n against_o the_o ●surpation_n of_o bb._n sir_n francis_n knollis_n treasurer_n of_o the_o queen_n house_n and_o knight_n of_o the_o garter_n in_o a_o parliament_n as_o he_o himself_o relate_v it_o to_o the_o l._n treasurer_n sir_n wil._n cicill_n in_o this_o tenor_n to_o the_o end_n i_o may_v inform_v your_o l._n of_o my_o deal_n in_o this_o parliament_n time_n against_o the_o undue_a claim_v superiority_n of_o the_o bb._n over_o their_o brethren_n thus_o it_o be_v because_o i_o be_v in_o the_o parliament_n in_o the_o 25_o year_n of_o king_n henry_n viii_o in_o which_o time_n all_o the_o clergy_n as_o well_o bb._n as_o other_o first_o make_v a_o humble_a submission_n to_o k._n henry_n 8._o acknowledge_v his_o supremacy_n and_o detest_a the_o b._n of_o rome_n authority_n upon_o which_o submission_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o king_n give_v unto_o the_o say_v bb._n the_o same_o ample_a rule_n that_o before_o they_o have_v under_o the_o pope_n over_o their_o inferior_a brethren_n save_v that_o the_o same_o rule_n be_v abridge_v by_o statute_n by_o this_o parenthesis_n follow_v that_o be_v without_o offend_v the_o prerogative_n royal_a of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o the_o law_n &_o custom_n of_o the_o realm_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o statute_n it_o be_v add_v that_o whosoever_o offend_v in_o any_o one_o part_n of_o that_o statute_n and_o their_o aider_n counsellor_n and_o abettor_n they_o all_o do_v fall_v into_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o praemunire_n and_o after_o i_o have_v recite_v this_o statute_n in_o the_o parliament_n house_n i_o declare_v that_o in_o k._n henry_n viii_o his_o day_n after_o this_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n that_o do_v practice_v superiority_n over_o their_o brethren_n and_o in_o k._n edward_n day_n the_o bishop_n obtain_v a_o statute_n whereby_o they_o be_v authorize_v to_o keep_v the_o court_n in_o the_o king_n name_n the_o which_o statute_n be_v repeal_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n and_o be_v not_o revive_v in_o her_o ma_n s_o time_n that_o now_o be_v whereupon_o it_o be_v doubtful_a to_o i_o by_o what_o authority_n the_o bb._n do_v keep_v their_o court_n now_o in_o their_o own_o name_n because_o it_o be_v against_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n that_o any_o shall_v keep_v a_o court_n without_o a_o sufficient_a warrant_n from_o the_o crown_n whereupon_o i_o be_v answer_v that_o the_o bb._n now_o do_v keep_v their_o court_n by_o prescription_n and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o bb._n may_v prescribe_v that_o k._n henry_n viii_o give_v they_o authority_n by_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o 25._o of_o his_o reign_n to_o have_v authority_n and_o rule_n over_o their_o inferior_a brethren_n as_o ample_a as_o they_o have_v in_o the_o pope_n time_n but_o this_o be_v no_o special_a warrant_n for_o they_o to_o keep_v their_o court_n by_o and_o that_o in_o their_o own_o name_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o other_o warrant_n to_o keep_v their_o court_n as_o they_o do_v now_o in_o their_o own_o name_n to_o my_o knowledge_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o make_v they_o obtain_v a_o statute_n in_o k._n edward_n day_n to_o keep_v their_o court_n by_o in_o the_o king_n name_n now_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a allegation_n that_o the_o bb._n shall_v claim_v authority_n at_o this_o present_a to_o keep_v court_n in_o their_o own_o name_n as_o they_o do_v by_o prescription_n because_o the_o statute_n of_o 25._o h._n 8._o do_v restrain_v they_o general_o from_o offend_v of_o the_o prerogative_n royal_a of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o the_o law_n &_o custom_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o no_o man_n may_v keep_v a_o court_n just_o without_o a_o special_a warrant_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n as_o be_v afore_o say_v and_o the_o general_a liberty_n give_v by_o k._n hen._n 8._o to_o the_o bb._n to_o rule_v &_o govern_v as_o they_o do_v in_o the_o pope_n time_n be_v no_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o the_o bb._n to_o keep_v their_o court_n in_o their_o own_o name_n by_o prescription_n as_o i_o take_v it_o and_o therefore_o the_o bb._n have_v do_v wise_o
and_o so_o to_o drive_v unto_o christ_n in_o who_o god_n have_v promise_v his_o favour_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n unto_o all_o that_o repent_v and_o consent_n to_o the_o law_n that_o it_o be_v good_a if_o thou_o believe_v the_o promise_n then_o do_v god_n truth_n justify_v thou_o that_o be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o receive_v thou_o to_o favour_n for_o christ_n sake_n in_o assurance_n where_o of_o and_o to_o certify_v thy_o heart_n he_o seal_v thou_o with_o the_o spirit_n eph._n 1._o &_o fol._n 54._o peter_n in_o act._n 2._o practise_v his_o key_n and_o by_o preach_v the_o law_n bring_v the_o people_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o themselves_o and_o bind_v their_o conscience_n so_o that_o they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o bring_v he_o forth_o the_o key_n of_o the_o sweet_a promise_n say_v repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n ......_o as_o christ_n compare_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n unto_o key_n so_o compare_v he_o it_o to_o a_o net_n and_o unto_o leaven_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n for_o certain_a property_n i_o marvel_v therefore_o that_o they_o boast_v not_o of_o their_o net_n &_o leaven_n aswell_o as_o of_o their_o key_n but_o as_o christ_n bid_v we_o bewar_n of_o the_o leven_a of_o the_o pharisee_n so_o beware_v of_o their_o counterfit_v key_n fol._n 56._o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n will_v prove_v by_o moses_n &_o aaron_n that_o satan_n and_o antichrist_n our_o most_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n and_o head_n of_o christ_n church_n moses_n say_v he_o signify_v christ_n and_o aaron_n the_o pope_n and_o yet_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o hebr._n prove_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o old_a law_n signify_v christ_n and_o his_o offering_n and_o his_o go_v once_o in_o the_o year_n into_o the_o inner_a temple_n signify_v the_o offering_n wherewith_o christ_n offer_v himself_o and_o christ_n going-in_a to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v a_o everlasting_a mediator_n or_o intercessor_n for_o we_o ......_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v signify_v by_o aaron_n and_o christ_n by_o moses_n why_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n as_o well_o content_a with_o christ_n law_n &_o doctrine_n as_o aaron_n be_v with_o moses_n why_o do_v our_o bb_n preach_v the_o pope_n and_o no●_n christ_n see_v the_o apostle_n preach_v not_o peter_n but_o christ_n paul_n speak_v of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n say_v we_o preach_v not_o ourselves_o but_o christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n and_z we_o preach_v ourselves_o your_o servant_n for_o christ_n sake_n etc._n etc._n for_o such_o doctrine_n tindall_n be_v persecute_v and_o when_o he_o escape_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n into_o germany_n they_o burn_v the_o new_a testament_n that_o he_o have_v translate_v into_o english_a and_o they_o cause_v the_o master_n of_o lovan_n to_o burn_v his_o body_n an._n 1535._o ii_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o speak_v more_o of_o the_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o wickedness_n martyr_n pa._n hamilton_n a_o scotish_n martyr_n of_o the_o clergy_n &_o people_n at_o that_o time_n unless_o i●_n fall_v in_o by_o the_o by_o but_o behold_v how_o god_n bring_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n into_o this_o island_n i_o may_v say_v wonderful_o first_o patrick_n hamilton_n a_o young_a gentleman_n be_v make_v abbot_n of_o ferne_n and_o then_o he_o will_v go_v and_o see_v other_o country_n and_o in_o his_o travel_n he_o visit_n witemberg_n and_o there_o he_o hear_v luther_n melanthon_n &_o other_o he_o have_v little_a or_o no_o understanding_n before_o and_o hearken_v unto_o they_o and_o take_v it_o to_o heart_n he_o return_v ●ome_o in_o the_o 23._o year_n of_o his_o age_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n 1526._o in_o what_o company_n he_o come_v he_o spare_v not_o to_o speak_v against_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o declare_v the_o truth_n as_o he_o have_v learn_v it_o the_o clergy_n can_v not_o endure_v this_o and_o under_o colour_n of_o conference_n they_o entice_v he_o unto_o santan_n drew_v they_o have_v persuade_v the_o young_a king_n james_n 5._o to_o go_v in_o pilgrimage_n to_o s._n duthess_n in_o rosse_n lest_o he_o shall_v hinder_v their_o proceed_n in_o the_o night_n time_n patrick_n hamilton_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o chamber_n where_o he_o be_v lodge_v and_o carry_v into_o the_o castle_n the_o next_o day_n he_o be_v present_v before_o the_o arch_a bishop_n james_n be●on_n and_o accuse_v upon_o these_o article_n the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n remain_v in_o child_n after_o baptism_n 2._o no_o charge_n the_o article_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n man_n by_o the_o power_n of_o free_a will_n can_v do_v any_o good_a 3._o no_o man_n be_v without_o sin_n so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v 4._o every_o true_a christian_a may_v know_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o estate_n of_o grace_n 5._o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n only_o 6._o good_a work_n make_v not_o a_o good_a man_n but_o a_o good_a man_n do_v good_a work_n and_o a_o ill_a man_n do_v ill_a work_n yet_o the_o same_o ill_a if_o true_o repent_v make_v not_o a_o ill_a man_n 7._o i'faith_o hope_n &_o charity_n be_v so_o link_v together_o that_o he_o who_o have_v one_o of_o they_o have_v all_o and_o who_o lack_v one_o of_o they_o lack_v all_o 8._o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o he_o withdraw_v his_o grace_n from_o man_n and_o grace_n be_v withdraw_v he_o can_v not_o but_o sin_n 9_o it_o be_v a_o devilish_a doctrine_n to_o teach_v that_o by_o any_o actual_a penance_n remission_n of_o sin_n be_v purchase_v 10_o auricular_a confession_n it_o not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 11._o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n 12._o the_o holy_a patriarch_n be_v in_o heaven_n before_o christ●_n passion_n 13._o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o every_o priest_n have_v as_o much_o power_n as_o the_o pope_n he_o be_v demand_v what_o he_o think_v of_o these_o article_n he_o answer_v ●_o hold_v the_o first_o seven_o to_o be_v undoubted_o true_a and_o the_o other_o be_v disputable_a point_n nor_o can_v i_o condemn_v they_o unless_o i_o see_v better_a reason_n than_o as_o yet_o i_o have_v hear_v after_o some_o conference_n with_o he_o these_o article_n be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o rectour_n of_o the_o university_n who_o with_o other_o twelve_o as_o they_o be_v call_v divine_n &_o lawyer_n have_v censure_v and_o condemn_v they_o as_o heretical_a redeliver_v they_o within_o two_o day_n in_o a_o solemn_a meeting_n march_n 2._o year_n 1527._o of_o the_o two_o archbb_n three_o bb_n six_o abbot_n and_o priour_o and_o eight_o divine_n these_o all_o set_v their_o hand_n unto_o the_o sentence_n and_o the_o ●ame_n day_n pa._n hamilton_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o secular_a judge_n and_o burn_v in_o the_o afternoon_n when_o this_o execution_n be_v report_v many_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v inquire_v why_o be_v such_o a_o man_n burn_v and_o when_o they_o hear_v of_o the_o article_n they_o talk_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o and_o many_o do_v apprehend_v otherwise_o then_o be_v judge_v church_n the_o blood_n of_o a_o martyr_n 〈…〉_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o university_n these_o article_n take_v a_o deep_a impression_n yea_o and_o many_o friar_n beg●n_n in_o their_o sermon_n to_o comdemn_v the_o error_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o clergy_n thus_o god_n make_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o one_o man_n to_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o spread_v the_o truth_n unto_o many_o in_o time_n of_o that_o lent_n alex._n seton_n a_o dominican_n preach_v oft_o in_o santandrewes_n the_o substance_n of_o his_o sermon_n be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o righteousness_n if_o god_n law_n be_v not_o violate_v no_o sin_n be_v commit_v it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n power_n to_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v no_o way_n purchase_v but_o by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n and_o true_a faith_n apprehend_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o purgatory_n pilgrimage_n prayer_n to_o saint_n merit_n nor_o miracle_n as_o the_o friar_n be_v wont_a therefore_o he_o be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n before_o the_o lent_n be_v finish_v he_o go_v to_o dundy_n and_o there_o he_o be_v advertise_v that_o another_o dominican_n have_v public_o contradict_v his_o former_a doctrine_n without_o delay_n he_o return_v and_o in_o a_o sermon_n confirm_v what_o he_o have_v teach_v before_o and_o moreover_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o virtue_n that_o be_v require_v of_o a_o faithful_a bishop_n and_o make_v this_o use_n of_o they_o within_o scotland_n be_v no_o true_a bishop_n if_o they_o be_v examine_v by_o those_o note_n which_o
the_o scripture_n require_v this_o be_v by_o and_o by_o report_v to_o the_o bishop_n in_o word_n vary_v a_o little_a that_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v a_o preacher_n or_o else_o he_o be_v a_o dumb_a dog_n he_o be_v send_v for_o and_o say_v the_o reporter_n be_v manifest_a liar_n the_o reporter_n be_v call_v and_o they_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v say_v so_o and_o they_o proffer_n to_o bring_v more_o witness_n he_o still_o say_v they_o be_v lya●●_n more_o witness_n be_v bring_v and_o many_o come_v to_o hear_v then_o say_v seton_n my_o lord_n you_o may_v consider_v what_o ear_n these_o ass_n have_v they_o can_v not_o discern_v betwixt_o paul_n esaie_n zacharie_n and_o malachi_n and_o friar_n alex._n seton_n i_o say_v indeed_o paul_n say_v a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v a_o teacher_n esa●e_o say_v shepherd_n not_o feed_v their_o flock_n be_v dumb_v ogg_n zacharie_n say_v they_o be_v idle_a pastor_n and_o i_o declare_v what_o those_o have_v say_v and_o my_o lord_n if_o you_o be_v not_o offend_v at_o they_o you_o can_v not_o be_v offend_v at_o i_o therefore_o i_o say_v again_o these_o man_n be_v manifest_a liar_n which_o have_v report_v that_o i_o call_v you_o or_o any_o other_o bishop_n no_o bishop_n but_o belly_n god_n the_o bishop_n be_v offend_v but_o dare_v not_o at_o that_o time_n proceed_v against_o he_o because_o he_o be_v learn_v bold_a and_o in_o favour_n with_o the_o king_n and_o his_o confessor_n but_o he_o and_o his_o complice_n do_v judge_v it_o not_o expedient_a such_o a_o man_n to_o be_v with_o the_o king_n and_o so_o they_o endeavoure_n to_o make_v he_o odious_a unto_o the_o king_n and_o call_v he_o a_o heretic_n the_o king_n do_v remember_v how_o in_o private_a confession_n the_o friar_n have_v admonish_v he_o for_o his_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o love_a no●_n such_o advice_n and_o say_v he_o know_v more_o of_o that_o man_n than_o any_o of_o they_o and_o then_o subscribe_v their_o accusation_n and_o promise_v to_o follow_v their_o advice_n in_o punish_v he_o and_o all_o of_o that_o sect_n seton_n be_v inform_v of_o these_o thing_n and_o flee_v to_o berwick_n whence_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o king_n in_o this_o manner_n most_o gracious_a sovereign_n lord_n under_o the_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o all_o of_o who_o only_o thy_o highness_n and_o majesty_n have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o exercise_v justice_n within_o thy_o realm_n under_o god_n who_o be_v king_n &_o lord_n of_o all_o realm_n and_o thy_o king_n seaton_n letter_n against_o the_o iniquity_n impiety_n &_o usurpation_n of_o bb_n and_o his_o advice_n to_o the_o king_n ma._n and_o all_o mortal_a king_n be_v but_o servant_n unto_o that_o only_a immortal_a prince_n chr._n jesus_n ...._o it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o thy_o gracious_a highness_n how_o thy_o mas._n sometime_o servant_n &_o orator_n and_o ever_o shall_v be_v to_o my_o life_n end_n be_v depart_v out_o of_o thy_o realm_n ....._o but_o i_o believe_v the_o cause_n of_o my_o depart_n be_v unknown_a which_o only_o be_v because_o the_o bb_n and_o churchman_n of_o thy_o realm_n have_v heretofore_o have_v such_o authority_n over_o thy_o subject_n that_o apparent_o they_o be_v rather_o king_n and_o thou_o the_o subject_a which_o unjust_a regiment_n be_v of_o itself_o false_a and_o contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n thou_o be_v the_o king_n &_o master_n and_o they_o be_v thy_o subject_n which_o be_v true_a and_o testify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o also_o because_o they_o will_v give_v no_o man_n of_o whatsoever_o degree_n who_o they_o once_o call_v heretic_n audience_n time_n nor_o place_n to_o speak_v and_o use_v defence_n which_o be_v against_o all_o law_n ...._o so_o that_o if_o i_o may_v have_v have_v audience_n and_o show_v my_o just_a defence_n ...._o i_o shall_v never_o have_v flee_v ...._o albeit_o it_o have_v cost_v i_o my_o life_n but_o because_o i_o believe_v that_o i_o can_v have_v no_o audience_n they_o be_v so_o great_a with_o thy_o ma._n i_o have_v depart_v not_o doubt_v but_o move_v of_o god_n until_o a_o better_a time_n that_o god_n illuminate_v thy_o ma._n even_o to_o give_v every_o man_n audience_n as_o thou_o shall_v &_o may_v and_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n who_o be_v accuse_v to_o death_n and_o to_o certify_v thy_o highness_n that_o these_o be_v not_o vain_a word_n here_o i_o offer_v i_o to_o come_v into_o thy_o realm_n again_o if_o thy_o ma._n will_v give_v i_o audience_n and_o hear_v what_o i_o have_v for_o i_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o cause_n any_o bishop_n abbot_n friar_n or_o secular_a which_o be_v most_o cunning_a some_o of_o they_o can_v not_o read_v their_o matin_n who_o be_v make_v judge_n of_o heresy_n to_o impugn_v i_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o if_o my_o part_n be_v find_v wrong_n thy_o ma._n be_v present_a and_o judge_n i_o refuse_v no_o pain_n ...._o and_o if_o i_o convince_v they_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o lay_v to_o my_o charge_n but_o the_o law_n of_o man_n and_o their_o own_o invention_n to_o uphold_v their_o own_o glory_n and_o pridefull_a life_n and_o daily_o scourge_v thy_o poor_a subject_n i_o refer_v myself_o unto_o thy_o ma._n as_o judge_v whether_o he_o have_v the_o victory_n that_o hold_v he_o at_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o can_v not_o fail_v nor_o be_v false_a or_o they_o that_o hold_v themselves_o at_o the_o law_n of_o man_n which_o be_v very_o oft_o plain_a contrary_n and_o therefore_o of_o necessity_n false_a for_o all_o thing_n contrary_a to_o verity_n which_o be_v christ_n and_o his_o law_n be_v of_o necessity_n a_o lie_n and_o to_o witness_v that_o this_o come_v of_o all_o my_o heart_n i_o shall_v remain_v at_o berwick_n whil_n i_o shall_v have_v thy_o mas._n answer_n and_o shall_v without_o fail_v return_n have_v thy_o hand_n writing_n that_o i_o shall_v have_v audience_n and_o place_n to_o speak_v i_o desire_v no_o more_o whereof_o if_o i_o have_v be_v sure_a i_o shall_v never_o have_v depart_v ...._o pardon_v i_o to_o say_v that_o which_o lie_v to_o thy_o mas._n charge_n thou_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n albeit_o they_o lie_v and_o say_v it_o appertain_v not_o to_o thy_o ma._n to_o intermeddle_v with_o such_o matter_n to_o cause_v every_o man_n who_o in_o any_o case_n be_v accuse_v of_o his_o life_n to_o have_v their_o just_a defence_n and_o their_o accuser_n produce_v according_a to_o their_o own_o law_n they_o do_v blind_a thy_o ma._n eye_n that_o know_v nothing_o of_o thy_o law_n but_o if_o i_o prove_v not_o this_o out_o of_o their_o own_o law_n i_o offer_v i_o to_o the_o death_n thy_o ma._n therefore_o may_v learn_v by_o daily_a experience_n see_v they_o neither_o fear_n the_o king_n of_o heaven_n as_o their_o life_n testify_v neither_o thou_o their_o natural_a prince_n as_o their_o usurp_a power_n in_o their_o action_n show_v why_o thy_o highness_n shall_v be_v no_o long_o blind_v thou_o may_v consider_v that_o they_o intend_v nothing_o else_o but_o only_o the_o uphold_v of_o their_o barded_a mule_n augment_v their_o insatiable_a avarice_n and_o continual_o overthrow_v &_o swallow_v up_o thy_o poor_a subject_n never_o preach_v nor_o teach_v out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o they_o shall_v the_o ignorant_a people_n but_o contend_v who_o may_v be_v most_o high_a most_o rich_a and_o near_a thy_o ma_n to_o put_v thy_o temporal_a lord_n and_o liege_n out_o of_o thy_o counsel_n &_o favour_n who_o shall_v be_v and_o be_v most_o tender_a servant_n to_o thy_o ma._n in_o all_o time_n of_o need_n to_o the_o defence_n of_o thou_o and_o thy_o crown_n ......_o let_v thy_o ma._n take_v boldness_n and_o authority_n which_o thou_o have_v of_o god_n and_o suffer_v not_o their_o cruel_a persecution_n to_o proceed_v without_o audience_n give_v to_o he_o who_o be_v accuse_v ..._o and_o then_o no_o doubt_n thou_o shall_v have_v thy_o subject_n heart_n and_o all_o that_o they_o can_v do_v in_o time_n of_o need_n tranquillity_n justice_n and_o policy_n and_o final_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n may_v it_o please_v you_o to_o give_v a_o copy_n of_o this_o to_o the_o clergy_n and_o keep_v the_o original_n and_o thy_o ma._n shall_v have_v experience_n if_o i_o go_v against_o one_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v etc._n etc._n this_o letter_n be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o it_o be_v read_v by_o many_o but_o no_o answer_n be_v return_v and_o the_o man_n go_v into_o england_n and_o preach_v some_o year_n the_o gospel_n to_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o hearer_n the_o histo_fw-la of_o reformat_fw-la other_o speak_v also_o against_o the_o licentiousness_n of_o the_o clergy_n that_o a_o new_a resolution_n be_v take_v to_o burn_v more_o a_o